Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n church_n religion_n true_a 7,548 5 5.1593 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A70306 The true Catholicks tenure, or, A good Christians certainty which he ought to have of his religion, and may have of his salvation by Edvvard Hyde ... Hyde, Edward, 1607-1659.; Hyde, Edward, 1607-1659. Allegiance and conscience not fled out of England. 1662 (1662) Wing H3868; ESTC R19770 227,584 548

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

courage_n in_o regard_n of_o god_n goodness_n who_o have_v promise_v salvation_n to_o those_o that_o sanctify_v he_o in_o their_o heart_n by_o good_a resolution_n and_o in_o their_o mouth_n by_o good_a profession_n and_o in_o their_o life_n by_o a_o good_a conversation_n and_o it_o fill_v they_o with_o constancy_n in_o regard_n of_o god_n truth_n and_o faithfulness_n who_o can_v but_o perform_v his_o promise_n this_o be_v the_o tenure_n of_o a_o true_a catholic_n he_o hold_v both_o his_o religion_n and_o salvation_n upon_o certainty_n not_o upon_o conjecture_n his_o religion_n he_o hold_v upon_o the_o certainty_n of_o god_n most_o holy_a word_n for_o nothing_o else_o can_v furnish_v his_o mouth_n with_o a_o satisfactory_a answer_n to_o silence_n much_o less_o with_o a_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o convince_v his_o adversary_n and_o his_o salvation_n he_o hold_v upon_o the_o certainty_n of_o god_n most_o faithful_a promise_n for_o nothing_o else_o can_v furnish_v his_o heart_n with_o comfort_n or_o establish_v it_o with_o courage_n to_o satisfy_v and_o content_v himself_o and_o agreeable_a to_o this_o as_o far_o as_o concern_v the_o certainty_n of_o religion_n upon_o which_o alone_o be_v found_v the_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n be_v vincentius_n lirinensis_n his_o description_n of_o a_o true_a catholic_n ille_fw-la verus_fw-la &_o germanus_fw-la catholicus_n est_fw-la qui_fw-la divinae_fw-la religioni_fw-la &_o catholicae_fw-la sidei_fw-la nihil_fw-la praeponit_fw-la non_fw-la hominis_fw-la cujusquam_fw-la autoritatem_fw-la non_fw-la amorem_fw-la non_fw-la ingenium_fw-la non_fw-la philosophiam_fw-la non_fw-la eloquentiam_fw-la sed_fw-la haec_fw-la cuncta_fw-la despiciens_fw-la &_o in_o fide_fw-la stans_fw-la &_o permanens_fw-la amplectitur_fw-la quicquid_fw-la universaliter_fw-la antiquitas_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la tenuisse_fw-la cognoverit_fw-la he_o be_v a_o true_a and_o genuine_a catholic_n who_o prefer_v nothing_o above_o divine_a religion_n and_o the_o catholic_n faith_n not_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o man_n not_o love_n not_o wit_n not_o philosophy_n not_o eloquence_n but_o despise_v all_o these_o and_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o faith_n do_v embrace_v whatever_o he_o know_v be_v universal_o and_o ancient_o hold_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n from_o this_o description_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o gather_v who_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n viz._n those_o christian_n first_o who_o in_o their_o religion_n prefer_v cause_n above_o person_n who_o pretend_v not_o to_o infallible_a doctor_n but_o make_v sure_a of_o a_o infallible_a doctrine_n who_o look_v after_o god_n not_o man_n authority_n as_o the_o foundation_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o else_o they_o can_v stand_v so_o fast_o in_o it_o as_o to_o despise_v the_o authority_n love_n wit_n philosophy_n eloquence_n of_o man_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n second_o who_o in_o their_o communion_n prefer_v person_n above_o themselves_o that_o be_v god_n trustee_n above_o their_o own_o humour_n regard_v not_o any_o novelty_n or_o singularity_n but_o make_v much_o of_o antiquity_n and_o universality_n or_o in_o a_o word_n those_o who_o be_v immovable_a in_o the_o catholic_n truth_n that_o they_o may_v persist_v in_o the_o true_a christian_a religion_n and_o who_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o they_o may_v persist_v in_o the_o true_a christian_a communion_n according_o my_o business_n in_o this_o treatise_n shall_v be_v to_o show_v first_o the_o certainty_n of_o religion_n in_o its_o substance_n that_o notwithstanding_o all_o our_o present_a impiety_n on_o all_o hand_n man_n may_v know_v when_o they_o have_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n second_o the_o certainty_n of_o religion_n in_o its_o exercise_n that_o notwithstanding_o all_o our_o present_a inconstancy_n man_n may_v know_v when_o they_o have_v the_o true_a christian_a communion_n and_o when_o this_o certainty_n of_o religion_n both_o in_o its_o substance_n and_o exercise_n be_v compass_v and_o achieve_v which_o be_v the_o work_n than_o the_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n will_v be_v a_o undeniable_a consequent_a which_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o good_a christian_n but_o till_o i_o come_v to_o my_o preach_n i_o think_v it_o needful_a to_o give_v myself_o to_o pray_v for_o though_o we_o may_v get_v the_o knowledge_n of_o religion_n by_o preach_v yet_o we_o can_v get_v the_o certainty_n much_o less_o the_o comfort_n of_o that_o knowledge_n but_o by_o pray_v so_o ill_a a_o course_n have_v those_o divine_n take_v of_o late_a to_o make_v this_o people_n gain_v the_o certainty_n of_o their_o religion_n who_o have_v turn_v all_o pray_v into_o preach_v for_o he_o that_o pray_v what_o the_o congregation_n know_v not_o do_v rather_o preach_v then_o pray_v as_o ●o_o his_o congregation_n for_o they_o can_v only_o hear_v ●s_a judge_n they_o can_v join_v as_o communicant_n in_o his_o prayer_n well_o he_o may_v teach_v they_o to_o pray_v after_o he_o but_o he_o can_v cause_v they_o to_o pray_v with_o he_o for_o though_o they_o may_v wish_v yet_o they_o can_v pray_v but_o in_o the_o assurance_n of_o faith_n and_o they_o can_v have_v the_o assurance_n of_o faith_n upon_o uncertainty_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o uncertainty_n in_o ignorance_n the_o ignorance_n of_o intention_n disposition_n and_o a_o err_a direction_n of_o he_o that_o pray_v and_o the_o ignorance_n not_o only_o of_o the_o substance_n and_o nature_n but_o also_o of_o the_o scope_n and_o drift_n of_o his_o prayer_n if_o any_o faith_n can_v be_v exercise_v here_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v whole_o implicit_a such_o a_o faith_n as_o we_o just_o blame_v in_o the_o papist_n and_o therefore_o most_o unjust_o force_v upon_o protestant_n a_o faith_n that_o have_v no_o particular_a evidence_n of_o what_o it_o be_v to_o do_v and_o therefore_o can_v have_v no_o particular_a assurance_n of_o what_o it_o do_v but_o while_o i_o have_v fall_v upon_o other_o prayer_n i_o have_v almost_o forget_v i_o own_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n look_v upon_o we_o once_o more_o show_v we_o the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n that_o we_o see_v our_o new_a building_n be_v upon_o the_o sand_n which_o be_v never_o the_o sure_a for_o be_v cement_v with_o blood_n may_v return_v again_o unto_o the_o rock_n our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o only_a foundation_n of_o our_o soul_n that_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o make_v atonement_n for_o our_o impiety_n and_o find_v the_o want_n of_o the_o master_n builder_n or_o most_o artificial_a workman_n may_v return_v also_o to_o his_o church_n which_o also_o be_v build_v on_o that_o foundation_n for_o that_o be_v the_o best_a if_o not_o the_o only_a way_n to_o get_v a_o remedy_n for_o our_o uncertainty_n that_o so_o come_v to_o the_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o our_o religion_n both_o in_o its_o substance_n and_o in_o its_o exercise_n we_o may_v also_o come_v to_o the_o most_o comfortable_a certainty_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o from_o the_o certainty_n pass_v to_o the_o enjoyment_n from_o the_o assurance_n pass_v to_o the_o inheritance_n thereof_o through_o the_o author_n and_o finisher_n both_o of_o our_o religion_n and_o of_o our_o salvation_n our_o bless_a lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ._n this_o be_v the_o main_a scope_n of_o this_o small_a treatise_n aught_o to_o be_v the_o fervent_a prayer_n of_o its_o author_n who_o know_v this_o lesson_n be_v not_o to_o be_v learn_v by_o recommend_v his_o book_n to_o you_o but_o by_o recommend_v your_o soul_n to_o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o all_o the_o preach_n in_o the_o world_n though_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v turn_v preacher_n not_o only_o with_o sword_n in_o their_o hand_n but_o also_o with_o authority_n in_o their_o mouth_n and_o with_o grace_n in_o their_o heart_n i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o all_o the_o preach_n in_o the_o world_n can_v bring_v you_o to_o this_o save_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o yourself_o but_o only_o pray_v and_o since_o you_o will_v not_o abide_v your_o church_n to_o pray_v you_o may_v be_v the_o better_o content_v to_o let_v his_o revile_v minister_n continue_v and_o increase_v their_o prayer_n for_o you_o because_o you_o have_v the_o great_a need_n though_o the_o lesser_a ability_n and_o power_n to_o pray_v true_o and_o hearty_o for_o yourself_o as_o either_o pray_n without_o christ_n intercession_n or_o pray_v against_o his_o word_n but_o sure_o pray_v without_o christ_n communion_n because_o pray_v without_o if_o not_o against_o his_o church_n it_o be_v hard_a to_o be_v a_o wilful_a separarist_n from_o your_o church_n and_o not_o to_o be_v thus_o peccant_a in_o your_o prayer_n but_o you_o be_v all_o for_o preach_v christ_n while_o i_o be_o rather_o for_o pray_v he_o that_o be_v for_o such_o sound_n and_o set_v prayer_n as_o by_o their_o matter_n assure_v i_o of_o his_o intercession_n and_o by_o their_o form_n assure_v i_o of_o his_o communion_n and_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o with_o mary_n i_o have_v choose_v the_o better_a part_n though_o
labour_v that_o they_o may_v be_v strengthen_v by_o piety_n and_o godliness_n yet_o will_v i_o not_o enter_v upon_o a_o particular_a enumeration_n of_o god_n communicable_a property_n i_o have_v be_v too_o long_o already_o upon_o this_o argument_n much_o less_o upon_o a_o particular_a explication_n of_o they_o for_o it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a for_o my_o purpose_n which_o be_v the_o advancement_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o life_n of_o man_n if_o i_o brief_o insist_v only_o upon_o these_o three_o to_o which_o all_o the_o rest_n may_v be_v reduce_v and_o they_o be_v truth_n in_o his_o understanding_n goodness_n in_o his_o will_n and_o purity_n in_o his_o action_n for_o we_o can_v better_o consider_v god_n activity_n then_o in_o the_o purity_n of_o his_o action_n unto_o which_o we_o must_v also_o annex_v a_o short_a discourse_n of_o liberty_n as_o belong_v to_o all_o three_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o understanding_n and_o will_v and_o action_n and_o these_o three_o property_n of_o truth_n goodness_n purity_n as_o they_o be_v eminent_o in_o god_n and_o evidence_n of_o his_o perfection_n so_o be_v they_o also_o eminent_a in_o religion_n the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o first_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o of_o religion_n god_n be_v true_a by_o a_o metaphysical_a and_o by_o a_o moral_a truth_n first_o by_o a_o metaphysical_a truth_n as_o have_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o all_o thing_n psa._n 139._o 2._o thou_o understand_v my_o thought_n long_o before_o god_n understand_v our_o thought_n before_o they_o be_v the_o angel_n not_o when_o they_o be_v and_o therefore_o they_o be_v defective_a in_o truth_n because_o defective_a in_o understanding_n for_o truth_n metaphysical_o be_v a_o conformity_n of_o the_o thing_n with_o the_o understanding_n and_o according_o our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v particular_o call_v the_o truth_n as_o be_v the_o omniscient_a wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o eternal_a understanding_n of_o the_o father_n even_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o eternal_a love_n both_o of_o father_n and_o son_n second_o god_n be_v true_a by_o a_o moral_a truth_n as_o have_v his_o affection_n expression_n action_n agreeable_a to_o his_o knowledge_n and_o that_o in_o three_o respect_n 1._o as_o truth_n be_v oppose_v to_o falsehood_n for_o god_n neither_o will_n nor_o speak_v a_o untruth_n 2._o as_o truth_n be_v oppose_v to_o dissimulation_n for_o god_n neither_o dissemble_v nor_o deceive_v 3._o as_o truth_n be_v oppose_v to_o inconstancy_n for_o god_n change_v not_o his_o judgement_n in_o truth_n declare_v or_o determine_v he_o change_v not_o the_o event_n in_o truth_n foretell_v or_o prophesy_v for_o in_o promise_n he_o keep_v his_o word_n and_o his_o truth_n if_o man_n perform_v the_o condition_n in_o threat_n he_o may_v not_o keep_v his_o word_n and_o yet_o keep_v his_o truth_n because_o they_o be_v but_o conditional_a and_o as_o for_o deceive_v the_o prophet_n ezek._n 14._o 9_o and_o 1_o king_n 22._o 23._o we_o general_o and_o true_o answer_v tradit_fw-la diabolo_fw-la decipiendos_fw-la he_o deliver_v they_o over_o to_o the_o devil_n to_o be_v deceive_v by_o he_o so_o say_v the_o text_n because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v for_o this_o cause_n god_n shall_v send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v a_o lie_n that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v damn_v who_o believe_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o have_v pleasure_n in_o unrighteousness_n 2_o thes._n 2._o 10_o 11_o 12._o a_o text_n that_o give_v we_o a_o fearful_a but_o yet_o a_o full_a account_n of_o all_o those_o strong_a delusion_n among_o man_n which_o lead_v direct_o to_o the_o father_n of_o lie_n the_o first_o step_n be_v a_o voluntary_a unrighteousness_n in_o not_o love_v the_o truth_n the_o second_o step_n be_v a_o strong_a delusion_n in_o believe_v a_o lie_n the_o three_o step_n god_n keep_v they_o from_o tread_v in_o that_o who_o have_v tread_v in_o the_o two_o former_a be_v a_o necessary_a damnation_n both_o for_o not_o love_v the_o truth_n and_o for_o have_v pleasure_n in_o lie_n but_o still_o god_n be_v true_a though_o every_o man_n be_v a_o liar_n for_o god_n deceive_v the_o prophet_n ez●_n 14._o 9_o as_o he_o harden_v the_o heart_n exod._n 10._o 1._o permissiuè_fw-la non_fw-la efficient_a permissive_o no●_n efficacious_o by_o not_o inhibit_v or_o not_o purge_v those_o ill_a quality_n that_o be_v already_o be_v the_o heart_n not_o by_o infuse_v any_o ill_a quality_n into_o it_o and_o therefore_o though_o he_o say_v i_o have_v harden_v pharaoh_n heart_n yet_o he_o say_v unto_o we_o harden_n not_o your_o own_a heart_n and_o according_o he_o threaten_v in_o ezekiel_n to_o destroy_v such_o a_o prophet_n from_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o people_n who_o heart_n be_v harden_v so_o fa●_n as_o to_o deceive_v himself_o and_o other_o whereas_o he_o can_v not_o in_o justice_n destroy_v he_o only_o for_o be_v that_o which_o himself_o have_v make_v he_o nay_o this_o permission_n be_v most_o plain_o set_v forth_o in_o that_o parable_n of_o 1_o kin._n 22._o for_o all_o that_o god_n do_v there_o be_v only_o to_o let_v the_o evil_a spirit_n go_v forth_o that_o be_v not_o to_o inhibit_v he_o from_o go_v and_o deceive_v not_o to_o send_v he_o down_o from_o heaven_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o evil_a spirit_n never_o do_v and_o never_o can_v come_v into_o heaven_n again_o since_o he_o be_v first_o throw_v down_o from_o thence_o and_o thus_o brief_o god_n be_v true_a metaphysical_o and_o moral_o metaphysical_a truth_n consist_v in_o the_o right_a apprehension_n of_o thing_n as_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o moral_a truth_n in_o the_o right_a affection_n and_o profession_n of_o thing_n as_o they_o be_v apprehend_v and_o this_o profession_n be_v either_o in_o word_n by_o veracity_n or_o in_o action_n by_o sincerity_n or_o in_o continuance_n of_o action_n by_o constancy_n so_o that_o moral_a truth_n be_v oppose_v to_o falsehood_n because_o it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o reality_n to_o dissimulation_n because_o it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o sincerity_n and_o to_o waver_v and_o float_v because_o it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o certainty_n and_o this_o same_o metaphysical_a and_o moral_a truth_n be_v also_o in_o religion_n pass_v from_o the_o master_n into_o his_o service_n for_o the_o father_n seek_v such_o to_o worship_v he_o who_o worship_v he_o as_o he_o be_v that_o be_v who_o worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n because_o he_o be_v a_o spirit_n and_o who_o worship_v he_o in_o truth_n because_o he_o be_v the_o truth_n s._n john_n 4._o 23_o 24._o the_o worship_n in_o spirit_n point_n at_o the_o metaphysical_a truth_n of_o religion_n which_o require_v a_o true_a apprehension_n of_o god_n the_o worship_n in_o truth_n point_v at_o the_o moral_a truth_n of_o religion_n which_o require_v a_o affection_n profession_n action_n agreeable_a to_o that_o true_a apprehension_n and_o for_o both_o these_o have_v our_o own_o church_n teach_v we_o to_o pray_v collect_v 7_o sunday_n after_o tri._n graff_n in_o our_o heart_n the_o love_n of_o thy_o name_n increase_v in_o we_o true_a religion_n nourish_v we_o with_o all_o goodness_n and_o of_o thy_o great_a mercy_n keep_v we_o in_o the_o same_o do_v you_o look_v for_o the_o metaphysical_a truth_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n name_n which_o must_v be_v presuppose_v before_o the_o love_n of_o it_o since_o no_o man_n can_v love_v what_o he_o do_v not_o know_v that_o you_o know_v god_n by_o his_o true_a name_n such_o as_o himself_o have_v proclaim_v exod._n 32._o 5_o 6_o 7._o or_o that_o you_o apprehend_v god_n as_o he_o be_v not_o set_v up_o to_o yourself_o a_o idol_n in_o stead_n of_o god_n as_o do_v all_o those_o who_o worship_v not_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n again_o do_v you_o look_v for_o the_o moral_a truth_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n name_n that_o you_o love_v he_o according_a to_o your_o knowledge_n or_o that_o you_o have_v your_o affection_n agreeable_a to_o your_o apprehension_n for_o to_o know_v god_n and_o not_o to_o love_v he_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o proclaim_v you_o do_v not_o true_o know_v he_o since_o the_o same_o god_n be_v the_o first_o truth_n and_o ground_n of_o our_o knowledge_n and_o also_o the_o last_o good_a and_o cause_n of_o our_o love_n and_o you_o may_v here_o likewise_o find_v this_o moral_a truth_n of_o religion_n in_o all_o respect_n first_o in_o its_o reality_n for_o it_o be_v the_o very_a true_a religion_n oppose_v to_o falsehood_n or_o superstition_n it_o be_v indeed_o god_n name_v second_o in_o its_o sincerity_n or_o fidelity_n for_o it_o be_v all_o goodness_n not_o only_o in_o the_o tongue_n but_o also_o in_o the_o heart_n
drunkard_n or_o unclean_a or_o profane_a person_n do_v in_o effect_n deny_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n wherefore_o when_o almighty_a god_n require_v every_o christian_n to_o be_v true_a or_o faithful_a unto_o the_o death_n that_o he_o may_v receive_v a_o crown_n of_o life_n revel_v 2._o 10._o he_o require_v of_o he_o a_o double_a truth_n or_o faithfulness_n not_o only_o that_o he_o be_v true_a and_o faithful_a in_o his_o belief_n but_o also_o and_o much_o rather_o that_o he_o be_v true_a and_o faithful_a in_o his_o life_n first_o god_n require_v a_o faithfulness_n in_o our_o belief_n by_o a_o right_a apprehension_n of_o god_n word_n not_o add_v thereto_o nor_o diminish_v therefrom_o for_o that_o be_v forbid_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o law_n as_o deut._n 4._o 2._o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o revel_v 22._o 18_o 19_o not_o add_v thereto_o by_o superstition_n nor_o diminish_v therefrom_o by_o faction_n for_o as_o the_o superstitious_a seek_v to_o flatter_v his_o god_n religiosi_fw-la sunt_fw-la deorum_fw-la amici_fw-la superstitiosi_fw-la deorum_fw-la adulatores_fw-la so_o the_o factious_a seek_v to_o flatter_v himself_o do_v thou_o thy_o duty_n and_o let_v alone_o thy_o flattery_n for_o it_o be_v not_o safe_a for_o thou_o to_o flatter_v thy_o god_n and_o much_o less_o to_o flatter_v thyself_o second_o god_n require_v faithfulness_n in_o our_o affection_n life_n and_o conversation_n that_o we_o may_v be_v saithfull_a professor_n of_o his_o truth_n and_o as_o faithful_a witness_n to_o it_o for_o a_o man_n may_v be_v god_n witness_n by_o speak_v by_o live_v by_o die_v and_o he_o that_o be_v command_v to_o be_v faithful_a unto_o the_o death_n that_o be_v to_o be_v faithful_a in_o die_v if_o god_n call_v he_o to_o it_o be_v already_o suppose_a to_o be_v faithful_a in_o speak_v and_o in_o live_v for_o he_o that_o bid_v thou_o be_v faithful_a unto_o thy_o death_n do_v sure_o suppose_v thou_o already_o faithful_a in_o thy_o life_n and_o command_v thou_o to_o continue_v so_o and_o this_o faithfulness_n be_v show_v by_o thy_o word_n in_o confess_v and_o that_o be_v veracity_n by_o thy_o deed_n in_o profess_v or_o practise_v and_o that_o be_v fidelity_n and_o by_o thy_o perseverance_n unto_o the_o death_n both_o in_o word_n and_o deed_n and_o that_o be_v constancy_n this_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o religion_n both_o formal_o and_o efficient_o formal_o in_o regard_n of_o it_o self_n and_o efficient_o in_o regard_n of_o we_o that_o as_o it_o be_v true_a in_o itself_o so_o it_o also_o make_v we_o true_a and_o faithful_a at_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o respect_n and_o if_o you_o further_o desire_v to_o know_v how_o far_o any_o christian_a church_n have_v follow_v or_o do_v follow_v this_o truth_n you_o may_v try_v it_o by_o this_o touchstone_n which_o be_v infallible_a in_o reason_n can_v be_v erroneous_a in_o religion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v aristotle_n lib._n 4._o eth._n cap._n 13._o greece_n be_v not_o so_o happy_a as_o to_o afford_v we_o a_o name_n for_o this_o moral_a truth_n and_o may_v just_o own_v to_o be_v graecia_n mendax_fw-la upon_o that_o account_n but_o he_o that_o have_v that_o virtue_n be_v call_v by_o aristotle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o true_a man_n both_o in_o life_n and_o word_n and_o be_v to_o be_v know_v by_o these_o three_o property_n that_o he_o be_v full_a of_o equity_n will_v do_v no_o man_n wrong_v be_v full_a of_o authoriey_n will_v ask_v no_o man_n leave_n whereas_o the_o hypocrite_n be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d himself_o for_o all_o other_o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o other_o for_o himself_o and_o last_o be_v full_a of_o modesty_n will_v ask_v no_o man_n praise_n and_o therefore_o will_v set_v forth_o himself_o though_o in_o true_a colour_n yet_o with_o the_o least_o varnish_n so_o also_o be_v the_o true_a religion_n first_o it_o be_v full_a of_o justice_n and_o equity_n for_o it_o look_v only_o after_o god_n glory_n not_o after_o this_o world_n advantage_n and_o therefore_o declare_v thing_n as_o they_o be_v not_o as_o they_o conduce_v to_o man_n interest_n second_o it_o be_v full_a of_o authority_n in_o all_o word_n and_o deed_n still_o like_o itself_o neither_o dissemble_v what_o be_v nor_o pretend_v what_o be_v not_o that_o it_o may_v please_v man_n rather_o than_o god_n but_o say_v with_o s._n paul_n for_o if_o i_o yet_o please_v man_n i_o shall_v not_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n gal._n 1._o 10._o three_o it_o be_v full_a of_o modesty_n rather_o delight_v in_o extenuation_n of_o its_o own_o worth_n then_o in_o amplification_n of_o it_o for_o though_o hypocrisy_n be_v a_o great_a talker_n &_o a_o great_a boaster_n yet_o religion_n do_v very_o much_o abhor_v all_o vain_a babble_n and_o much_o more_o all_o vain_a boast_n not_o walk_v in_o crastiness_n nor_o handle_v the_o word_n of_o god_n deceitful_o but_o by_o manifestation_n of_o the_o truth_n commend_v itself_o in_o every_o man_n conscience_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 2_o cor._n 4._o 2._o and_o therefore_o any_o christian_a church_n whatsoever_o that_o either_o turn_v religion_n into_o state_n policy_n make_v christ_n interest_n subservient_fw-fr to_o its_o own_o or_o that_o change_v its_o doctrine_n to_o please_v its_o new_a lord_n and_o master_n or_o that_o boast_v too_o much_o of_o its_o own_o purity_n and_o perfection_n as_o if_o none_o can_v be_v christian_n but_o in_o outward_a communion_n with_o it_o none_o good_a christian_n in_o comparison_n of_o it_o must_v in_o these_o respect_n be_v say_v not_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d true_a church_n for_o though_o it_o be_v metaphysical_o a_o true_a church_n yet_o be_v not_o so_o moral_o not_o according_a to_o moral_a truth_n for_o that_o it_o want_v either_o equity_n or_o authority_n or_o modesty_n or_o all_o three_o that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o want_v some_o necessary_a attendant_n of_o moral_a truth_n and_o here_o i_o have_v rather_o bewail_v then_o examine_v rather_o deplore_v than_o detect_v the_o present_a condition_n of_o many_o christian_a church_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o the_o now_o so_o much_o despise_v and_o persecute_a church_n of_o england_n can_v have_v it_o just_o lay_v to_o her_o charge_n that_o either_o she_o labour_v to_o inter-weave_a her_o own_o with_o christ_n interest_n much_o less_o to_o advance_v she_o own_o interest_n above_o he_o for_o want_n of_o equity_n or_o do_v not_o deal_v plain_o with_o those_o church_n that_o do_v so_o for_o want_v of_o authorite_n or_o do_v revile_v other_o reform_a church_n which_o sure_o have_v not_o be_v infallible_a can_v not_o be_v impeccable_a for_o want_v of_o modesty_n and_o my_o hope_n be_v that_o a_o church_n so_o full_a of_o moral_a truth_n no_o less_o then_o of_o metaphysical_a as_o it_o have_v the_o god_n of_o truth_n to_o own_o it_o so_o it_o will_v in_o due_a time_n find_v the_o god_n of_o power_n to_o vindicate_v to_o restore_v and_o to_o defend_v it_o however_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o many_o good_a christian_n have_v rather_o suffer_v in_o her_o afflict_a communion_n then_o reign_v in_o the_o prosperity_n and_o glory_n of_o those_o who_o either_o do_v cause_n or_o do_v not_o regard_v her_o affliction_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o can_v but_o pass_v this_o for_o a_o general_a animadversion_n that_o since_o only_o the_o true_a catholic_n be_v the_o true_a christian_a and_o he_o have_v two_o oposites_n the_o pseudocatholick_a who_o be_v peccant_a in_o excess_n and_o the_o anticatholick_a who_o be_v peccant_a in_o defect_n it_o fare_v with_o these_o two_o opposite_n as_o it_o fare_v with_o those_o two_o extreme_n that_o oppose_v the_o moral_a truth_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o proud_a boaster_n love_v to_o make_v show_n of_o more_o than_o be_v so_o do_v the_o pseudocatholick_a who_o obtrude_v more_o for_o religion_n then_o can_v be_v prove_v religion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o the_o dissembler_n be_v quite_o contrary_a for_o he_o deny_v thing_n that_o be_v and_o dimininish_v what_o he_o do_v not_o deny_v so_o do_v the_o anticatholick_a who_o deny_v that_o to_o be_v religion_n which_o god_n have_v make_v so_o and_o diminish_v what_o he_o can_v deny_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v the_o same_o author_n the_o boaster_n and_o the_o dissembler_n both_o be_v to_o be_v blame_v because_o neither_o be_v so_o true_a a_o man_n as_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v yet_o more_o the_o boaster_n than_o the_o dissembler_n so_o also_o in_o religion_n the_o pseudocatholick_a seem_v far_a from_o the_o truth_n for_o his_o superaddition_n than_o the_o anticatholick_a for_o his_o diminution_n for_o he_o that_o avow_v uncertainty_n for_o certainty_n bring_v a_o suspicion_n upon_o his_o faith_n even_o in_o most_o undoubted_a truth_n whereas_o he_o
that_o be_v wary_a and_o timorous_a in_o the_o choice_n of_o his_o tenant_n though_o he_o may_v be_v think_v a_o enemy_n to_o his_o own_o knowledge_n yet_o he_o can_v be_v think_v a_o enemy_n to_o god_n truth_n for_o though_o he_o may_v stick_v a_o while_n at_o the_o embrace_v of_o some_o divine_a truth_n till_o they_o appear_v to_o he_o to_o be_v so_o yet_o he_o can_v easy_o obtrude_v any_o untruth_n for_o truth_n and_o god_n will_v soon_o pardon_v the_o infirmity_n of_o a_o man_n in_o stick_v at_o a_o truth_n than_o the_o presumption_n of_o a_o man_n in_o obtrude_a a_o untruth_n for_o the_o first_o show_v himself_o as_o a_o man_n subject_n to_o doubt_n not_o able_a to_o command_v his_o own_o faith_n but_o the_o other_o will_v fain_o be_v account_v little_o less_o than_o a_o god_n in_o make_v himself_o not_o the_o interpreter_n but_o the_o author_n of_o truth_n and_o so_o challenge_v a_o dominion_n over_o the_o faith_n of_o other_o which_o however_o ought_v not_o to_o dishearten_v we_o from_o know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o any_o christian_a church_n for_o as_o of_o old_a it_o derogate_a nothing_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n that_o some_o prophet_n do_v tell_v lie_n in_o his_o name_n so_o neither_o do_v it_o now_o derogate_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n that_o there_o be_v so_o much_o mixture_n of_o man_n invention_n or_o surmise_n with_o that_o truth_n but_o we_o must_v say_v of_o all_o these_o tare_n that_o a_o enemy_n have_v sow_v they_o while_o man_n sleep_v and_o yet_o we_o may_v not_o think_v god_n providence_n over_o his_o church_n either_o careless_a in_o not_o look_v after_o it_o or_o defective_a in_o look_v after_o it_o to_o little_a purpose_n as_o if_o he_o that_o be_v the_o keeper_n of_o israel_n do_v sleep_v when_o israel_n most_o need_v keep_v for_o the_o apostle_n have_v say_v oportet_fw-la haereses_fw-la esse_fw-la inter_fw-la vos_fw-la 1_o cor._n 11._o 19_o there_o must_v be_v sect_n or_o heresy_n among_o you_o that_o they_o which_o be_v approve_v may_v be_v make_v manifest_a as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o must_v be_v for_o which_o there_o be_v a_o good_a reason_n why_o it_o shall_v be_v and_o there_o be_v a_o good_a reason_n why_o there_o shall_v be_v heresy_n among_o you_o nay_o indeed_o two_o good_a reason_n the_o one_o on_o your_o part_n that_o you_o may_v be_v try_v or_o prove_v the_o other_o on_o god_n part_n that_o they_o which_o be_v approve_v may_v be_v make_v manifest_a to_o set_v forth_o the_o power_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n truth_n which_o like_o the_o sun_n shine_v the_o more_o glorious_o when_o it_o have_v break_v through_o some_o great_a cloud_n that_o oppose_v it_o for_o so_o much_o be_v true_a even_o of_o that_o wicked_a objection_n rom._n 3._o 7._o if_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n have_v more_o abound_v through_o my_o lie_n unto_o his_o glory_n why_o yet_o be_o i_o also_o judge_v as_o a_o sinner_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a the_o truth_n of_o god_n do_v often_o more_o abound_v through_o our_o lie_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o yet_o the_o objection_n be_v so_o ungodly_a and_o unreasonable_a why_o be_o i_o judge_v as_o a_o sinner_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o think_v it_o worth_a the_o answer_n but_o only_o silence_v such_o a_o desperate_a and_o profane_a disputant_n with_o a_o damnabitur_fw-la that_o he_o be_v like_a to_o be_v damn_v for_o his_o pain_n v_o 8._o who_o damnation_n be_v just_a for_o no_o argument_n so_o fit_a to_o confute_v he_o as_o damnation_n who_o will_v needs_o plead_v or_o dispute_v for_o the_o devil_n will_v you_o plead_v for_o baal_n will_v you_o save_v he_o he_o that_o will_v plead_v for_o he_o let_v he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n jud._n 6._o 31._o what_o a_o shame_n be_v it_o for_o we_o christian_n that_o baal_n shall_v have_v so_o many_o to_o plead_v for_o he_o and_o god_n so_o few_o that_o superstition_n and_o faction_n shall_v so_o much_o outstrip_v true_a religion_n the_o professor_n of_o the_o one_o for_o they_o both_o meet_v in_o the_o same_o baal_n though_o they_o be_v so_o far_o asunder_o in_o themselves_o go_v as_o much_o beyond_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o other_o in_o zeal_n as_o they_o come_v short_a of_o they_o in_o truth_n and_o yet_o still_o since_o superstition_n and_o faction_n must_v needs_o be_v judge_v as_o sin_n why_o shall_v they_o not_o be_v judge_v as_o sinner_n that_o maintain_v they_o for_o neither_o shall_v we_o find_v a_o disputant_n to_o defend_v it_o if_o both_o be_v sin_n neither_o shall_v we_o find_v a_o advocate_n to_o plead_v for_o it_o if_o both_o alike_o uphold_v the_o worship_n of_o baal_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v and_o will_v be_v swarm_n of_o such_o advocate_n multitude_n of_o such_o disputant_n notwithstanding_o joash_n have_v say_v let_v they_o be_v put_v to_o death_n that_o so_o plead_v and_o s._n paul_n have_v moreover_o say_v their_o damnation_n be_v just_a that_o so_o dispute_v for_o neither_o death_n nor_o damnation_n can_v silence_v the_o perverse_a dispute_n of_o man_n of_o corrupt_a mind_n and_o destitute_a of_o the_o truth_n suppose_v that_o gain_n be_v godliness_n wherefore_o st._n paul_n advice_n to_o timothy_n be_v from_o such_o withdraw_v thyself_o 1_o tim._n 6._o 5._o and_o we_o be_v little_o behold_v to_o the_o latin_a translation_n for_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o this_o so_o necessary_a a_o text_n yet_o god_n forbid_v we_o shall_v therefore_o think_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v expunge_v out_o of_o the_o greek_a copy_n wherein_o both_o latin_a and_o greek_a church_n so_o joint_o agree_v or_o else_o out_o of_o our_o own_o practice_n and_o observation_n s._n paul_n advice_n in_o controversy_n or_o rather_o corruption_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v from_o such_o withdraw_v thyself_o not_o against_o such_o oppose_v thyself_o he_o advise_v we_o rather_o to_o have_v no_o communion_n with_o they_o then_o to_o maintain_v disputation_n against_o they_o for_o as_o in_o carnal_a uncleanness_n the_o only_a way_n for_o a_o man_n to_o have_v a_o clean_a body_n and_o a_o chaste_a soul_n be_v to_o flee_v fornication_n 1_o cor._n 6._o 18._o not_o to_o resist_v it_o so_o be_v it_o also_o in_o this_o spiritual_a uncleanness_n which_o make_v man_n go_v a_o whore_v after_o their_o own_o invention_n we_o must_v rather_o avoid_v the_o temptation_n then_o think_v to_o overcome_v it_o rather_o shun_v the_o disputant_n than_o think_v to_o answer_v their_o disputation_n for_o man_n who_o faction_n be_v above_o their_o religion_n will_v never_o be_v silence_v by_o argument_n of_o religion_n and_o man_n who_o interest_n be_v above_o their_o conscience_n will_v never_o give_v any_o ear_n to_o the_o plea_n of_o conscience_n and_o this_o reason_n be_v in_o effect_n give_v by_o s._n paul_n himself_o why_o in_o such_o a_o case_n it_o be_v better_a to_o withdraw_v then_o to_o withstand_v v_o 3._o for_o say_v he_o if_o any_o man_n teach_v otherwise_o and_o consent_v not_o to_o wholesome_a word_n even_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v according_a to_o godliness_n he_o be_v proud_a know_v nothing_o but_o dote_v about_o question_n and_o strife_n of_o word_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v there_o be_v little_a hope_n of_o do_v good_a upon_o such_o a_o man_n for_o if_o he_o will_v have_v hearken_v to_o any_o wholesome_a word_n and_o not_o only_o to_o flatter_a speech_n he_o will_v have_v hearken_v to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o may_v say_v to_o those_o word_n which_o christ_n speak_v in_o his_o person_n s._n matth._n 22._o 21._o render_v unto_o caesar_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n and_o unto_o god_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v god_n for_o those_o word_n alone_o if_o right_o follow_v will_v suffer_v no_o man_n to_o be_v a_o pharisee_fw-mi that_o be_v a_o separatist_n either_o in_o church_n or_o state_n for_o if_o man_n do_v give_v caesar_n his_o due_a there_o can_v be_v no_o sedition_n in_o the_o state_n if_o they_o do_v give_v god_n his_o due_a there_o can_v be_v no_o schism_n nor_o heresy_n in_o the_o church_n but_o we_o must_v say_v to_o those_o word_n which_o christ_n speak_v in_o his_o doctrine_n whether_o immediate_o by_o himself_o or_o mediate_o by_o his_o apostle_n if_o such_o a_o pharisee_n will_v have_v hearken_v to_o wholesome_a more_o than_o to_o please_a word_n he_o will_v have_v hearken_v to_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o deliver_v both_o in_o his_o person_n and_o in_o his_o doctrine_n and_o if_o he_o will_v have_v receive_v any_o doctrine_n but_o that_o which_o comply_v with_o his_o worldly_a interest_n he_o will_v have_v receive_v the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v according_a to_o godliness_n but_o since_o he_o will_v neither_o hear_v the_o one_o nor_o receive_v the_o other_o it_o be_v
with_o martha_n you_o do_v make_v the_o great_a noise_n for_o christ_n learn_v by_o preach_v if_o at_o all_o so_o to_o be_v learn_v only_a sill_n the_o head_n and_o ofttimes_o unsettle_v the_o brain_n but_o christ_n learn_v by_o pray_v fill_v the_o heart_n and_o never_o fail_v to_o establish_v it_o he_o that_o be_v come_v to_o this_o establishment_n be_v the_o only_a true_a christian_a for_o he_o be_v sure_a that_o he_o do_v god_n good_a service_n and_o leave_v it_o to_o other_o only_o to_o think_v that_o they_o do_v so_o he_o that_o have_v but_o a_o putâram_fw-la for_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o do_n can_v have_v but_o a_o nonputâram_fw-la for_o the_o apology_n of_o his_o misdoing_n if_o a_o man_n do_v but_o only_o think_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o right_n he_o can_v only_o say_v for_o himself_o i_o do_v not_o think_v i_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n and_o that_o in_o ordinary_a matter_n be_v the_o apology_n of_o they_o that_o want_v wit_n but_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v the_o apology_n of_o they_o that_o want_v common_a honesty_n for_o what_o be_v imprudence_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o world_n be_v impiety_n in_o regard_n of_o god_n there_o it_o be_v unwise_a to_o be_v under_o a_o uncertain_o or_o mistake_v but_o here_o it_o be_v unconscionable_a there_o it_o be_v insipiency_n but_o here_o it_o be_v irreligion_n for_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v be_v those_o tax_v by_o our_o bless_a saviour_n for_o want_v of_o discretion_n or_o rather_o for_o want_v of_o conscience_n who_o by_o kill_a god_n servant_n think_v they_o do_v god_n service_n s._n john_n 16._o 12._o since_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v so_o dangerous_a only_o to_o think_v we_o do_v god_n service_n let_v we_o in_o the_o first_o place_n make_v sure_a of_o it_o especial_o then_o when_o we_o more_o particular_o profess_v to_o serve_v he_o for_o if_o indeed_o and_o in_o truth_n we_o do_v he_o true_a and_o laudable_a service_n we_o shall_v have_v the_o comfort_n of_o his_o servant_n here_o the_o joy_n of_o his_o salvation_n &_o the_o reward_n of_o his_o servant_n hereafter_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o his_o kingdom_n this_o be_v that_o which_o he_o desire_v to_o preach_v to_o you_o but_o much_o more_o to_o pray_v for_o you_o who_o be_v your_o brother_n and_o servant_n in_o our_o common_a saviour_n edw._n hyde_n the_o content_n of_o the_o several_a chapter_n in_o the_o ensue_a treatise_n chap._n i._n the_o assurance_n of_o our_o religion_n in_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n be_v before_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n endeavour_n be_v to_o beget_v in_o all_o christian_n the_o assurance_n of_o religion_n against_o heathenism_n judaisme_n mixture_n of_o judaisme_n and_o depravation_n of_o christianity_n what_o we_o want_v of_o religion_n we_o want_v of_o salvation_n the_o neglect_n of_o religion_n end_v in_o irreligion_n chap._n ii_o the_o certainty_n of_o religion_n may_v be_v without_o the_o assurance_n of_o it_o by_o reason_n of_o our_o profaneness_n hypocrisy_n and_o perverseness_n though_o scarce_o by_o reason_n of_o our_o ignorance_n and_o that_o perverseness_n be_v the_o way_n to_o the_o worst_a kind_n of_o irreligion_n or_o atheism_n chap._n iii_o of_o the_o substance_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n &_o the_o difference_n between_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o authority_n certainty_n and_o immutability_n chap._n iu._n that_o though_o the_o substance_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n be_v different_a in_o themselves_o yet_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v account_v so_o now_o in_o our_o profession_n &_o much_o less_o make_v so_o in_o our_o practice_n for_o that_o whosoever_o be_v not_o sure_a of_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o religion_n will_v not_o much_o regard_n the_o certainty_n that_o be_v in_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o chap._n v._o the_o assurance_n we_o have_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n in_o that_o it_o be_v spiritual_a and_o resemble_v god_n the_o author_n of_o it_o in_o his_o incommunicable_a property_n of_o simplicity_n and_o infinity_o as_o also_o in_o his_o immutability_n and_o eternity_n which_o be_v the_o two_o consectary_n of_o infinity_o and_o also_o in_o his_o omnipotency_n all-sufficiency_n and_o omnisciencie_n which_o be_v the_o three_o consectary_n of_o eternity_n chap._n vi_o the_o assurance_n that_o we_o have_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n in_o that_o it_o resemble_v god_n in_o his_o communicable_a property_n as_o truth_n goodness_n purity_n and_o liberty_n chap._n vii_o the_o assurance_n we_o have_v of_o religion_n for_o that_o it_o resemble_v god_n in_o his_o attribute_n of_o justice_n grace_n and_o mercy_n chap._n viii_o the_o assurance_n we_o have_v of_o religion_n in_o that_o it_o make_v we_o reverence_n and_o fear_n god_n ascribe_v the_o honour_n due_a unto_o his_o name_n and_o of_o the_o ten_o proper_a name_n of_o god_n collect_v by_o s._n hierome_n chap._n i._n the_o certainty_n of_o our_o religion_n not_o to_o be_v get_v by_o speculation_n but_o by_o practice_n that_o the_o apostle_n endeavour_v to_o beget_v in_o all_o christian_n a_o certainty_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n against_o heathenism_n judaisme_n mixture_n of_o judaisme_n and_o depravation_n of_o christianity_n what_o we_o want_v of_o religion_n we_o want_v of_o salvation_n the_o neglect_n of_o religion_n end_v in_o irreligion_n the_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o those_o who_o most_o earnest_o contend_v for_o it_o even_o with_o more_o earnestness_n than_o discretion_n may_v be_v desire_v but_o can_v be_v attain_v without_o the_o certainty_n of_o election_n and_o the_o chief_a proof_n of_o our_o election_n be_v from_o our_o perseverance_n in_o religion_n thus_o the_o apostle_n prove_v that_o god_n have_v not_o cast_v off_o his_o people_n who_o he_o do_v foreknow_v from_o this_o answer_n of_o he_o to_o eliah_n i_o have_v reserve_v to_o my_o self_n seven_o thousand_o man_n which_o have_v not_o bow_v the_o knee_n to_o the_o image_n of_o baal_n that_o be_v to_o say_v who_o have_v not_o be_v guilty_a of_o apostasy_n in_o this_o general_a defection_n of_o the_o jew_n of_o which_o thou_o complain_v but_o do_v still_o persist_v and_o persevere_v in_o the_o true_a religion_n if_o god_n will_v have_v his_o prophet_n know_v he_o have_v elect_v the_o israelite_n because_o they_o have_v not_o fall_v from_o his_o worship_n shall_v we_o think_v we_o can_v be_v otherwise_o assure_v of_o our_o election_n then_o by_o make_v sure_a of_o our_o religion_n therefore_o whosoever_o have_v bow_v the_o knee_n unto_o baal_n can_v right_o conclude_v that_o god_n have_v elect_v he_o but_o rather_o that_o god_n will_v cast_v he_o away_o because_o he_o have_v first_o cast_v god_n away_o and_o will_v you_o know_v what_o be_v this_o baal_n let_v beza_n tell_v you_o baal_n patronum_fw-la significat_fw-la vel_fw-la eum_fw-la in_o cujus_fw-la aliquis_fw-la est_fw-la potestate_fw-la baal_n signify_v a_o lord_n and_o master_n that_o have_v power_n over_o any_o man_n so_o than_o a_o religion_n that_o please_v my_o master_n on_o earth_n but_o not_o my_o father_n in_o heaven_n be_v a_o bow_v unto_o baal_n he_o that_o will_v be_v god_n servant_n must_v acknowledge_v no_o other_o master_n but_o only_a god_n both_o for_o the_o rule_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o his_o godliness_n and_o this_o man_n alone_o will_v be_v sure_a not_o to_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n service_n wherefore_o the_o best_a assurance_n we_o can_v have_v that_o god_n will_v not_o forsake_v we_o be_v that_o we_o do_v not_o forsake_v he_o for_o none_o can_v be_v assure_v of_o his_o goodness_n but_o they_o that_o continue_v in_o it_o his_o own_o spirit_n thus_o attest_v but_o towards_o thou_o goodness_n if_o thou_o continue_v in_o his_o goodness_n otherwise_o thou_o also_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o rom._n 11._o 22._o for_o religion_n be_v as_o the_o way_n salvation_n be_v as_o the_o journey_n end_n and_o a_o man_n must_v first_o make_v sure_a of_o his_o way_n before_o he_o can_v make_v sure_a of_o his_o journey_n end_n i_o be_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n &_o the_o life_n say_v our_o bless_a saviour_n s._n joh._n 14._o 6._o and_o he_o give_v this_o reason_n of_o that_o say_n no_o man_n come_v to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o i_o as_o christ_n be_v the_o way_n to_o his_o father_n so_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v the_o way_n to_o christ_n we_o must_v all_o first_o come_v to_o christ_n before_o we_o can_v come_v to_o god_n and_o we_o can_v come_v to_o christ_n but_o by_o the_o true_a christian_a religion_n for_o though_o religion_n in_o general_n be_v a_o knit_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o god_n yet_o the_o christian_a religion_n which_o we_o must_v look_v to_o be_v save_v by_o be_v a_o knit_n of_o the_o soul_n unto_o god_n in_o and_o through_o our_o saviour_n christ._n for_o since_o the_o great_a distance_n make_v
offend_v many_o of_o those_o that_o manifest_o oppose_v the_o truth_n and_o immortal_o injure_v their_o brethren_n by_o turn_v they_o out_o of_o the_o road_n of_o salvation_n to_o look_v after_o some_o new_a by-path_n no_o less_o doubtful_a than_o perilous_a for_o if_o st._n paul_n do_v wish_v himself_o accurse_v from_o christ_n for_o his_o brethren_n his_o kinsman_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n rom._n 9_o 3._o then_o none_o that_o take_v upon_o he_o st._n paul_n calling_n but_o be_v bind_v to_o have_v so_o much_o of_o st._n paul_n zeal_n as_o to_o think_v the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n his_o great_a blessing_n and_o to_o make_v it_o his_o chief_a aim_n and_o he_o that_o do_v the_o one_o will_v certain_o do_v the_o other_o and_o consequent_o not_o regard_v the_o causeless_a displeasure_n of_o many_o if_o he_o may_v take_v the_o right_a course_n to_o save_v but_o one_o and_o without_o doubt_v this_o doctrine_n do_v immediate_o tend_v to_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o which_o advise_v man_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o hypocrisy_n in_o profess_v religion_n and_o of_o apostasy_n in_o renounce_v it_o or_o of_o schism_n in_o recede_v from_o it_o for_o schism_n be_v a_o particular_a apostasy_n even_o as_o a_o apostasy_n be_v a_o general_a schism_n for_o the_o only_a way_n to_o be_v assure_v of_o our_o future_a communion_n with_o god_n in_o happiness_n be_v to_o be_v assure_v of_o our_o present_a communion_n with_o god_n in_o holiness_n and_o we_o can_v be_v assure_v of_o communion_n with_o the_o father_n of_o light_n unless_o we_o walk_v as_o child_n of_o the_o light_n it_o be_v in_o effect_n st._n johns_n argumentation_n 1_o epist._n c._n 1._o v._n 5_o 6_o 7._o he_o that_o say_v he_o have_v communion_n with_o god_n must_v walk_v in_o the_o light_n but_o all_o we_o that_o profess_v ourselves_o christian_n do_v say_v we_o have_v communion_n with_o god_n in_o and_o by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n therefore_o we_o must_v all_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n we_o that_o do_v profess_v ourselves_o christian_n as_o we_o do_v say_v that_o we_o have_v communion_n or_o fellowship_n one_o with_o another_o so_o we_o do_v much_o more_o say_v that_o we_o have_v communion_n with_o god_n not_o invite_v man_n to_o our_o civil_a but_o to_o our_o christian_a communion_n and_o unless_o we_o make_v good_a that_o say_n we_o can_v make_v good_a our_o own_o christian_a profession_n for_o he_o that_o have_v communion_n with_o christ_n have_v communion_n with_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o he_o that_o have_v the_o son_n have_v the_o father_n also_o 1_o joh._n 2._o 23._o whosoever_o deny_v the_o son_n the_o same_o have_v not_o the_o father_n therefore_o turk_n and_o infidel_n and_o antitrinitarian_n do_v not_o worship_v the_o same_o god_n with_o we_o orthodox_n christian_n but_o he_o that_o acknowledge_v the_o son_n have_v the_o father_n also_o therefore_o orthodox_n christian_n in_o have_v christ_n be_v sure_o they_o have_v communion_n with_o god_n for_o although_o these_o latter_a word_n he_o that_o acknowledge_v the_o son_n have_v the_o father_n also_o be_v not_o in_o the_o greek_a original_n either_o of_o greek_a or_o latin_a church_n for_o which_o cause_n they_o be_v by_o our_o interpreter_n insert_v in_o different_a character_n from_o the_o text_n who_o do_v not_o desire_v to_o follow_v beza_n where_o beza_n do_v not_o follow_v the_o church_n yet_o they_o be_v in_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a and_o be_v own_v by_o clemens_n of_o alexandria_n in_o his_o comment_n upon_o this_o epistle_n as_o it_o be_v record_v in_o bibliothecâ_fw-la patrum_fw-la and_o also_o by_o the_o syrus_n interpres_fw-la and_o indeed_o be_v in_o effect_n own_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n himself_o for_o that_o they_o be_v virtual_o include_v in_o the_o former_a word_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o contrariety_n or_o opposition_n for_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o whosoever_o deny_v the_o son_n have_v not_o the_o father_n it_o be_v most_o undoubted_o true_a that_o whosoever_o confess_v the_o son_n have_v the_o father_n therefore_o all_o our_o labour_n must_v be_v that_o we_o may_v have_v the_o son_n for_o in_o have_v he_o we_o be_v sure_a to_o have_v the_o father_n and_o this_o be_v the_o grand_a doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n this_o be_v the_o main_a gospel-truth_n that_o the_o apostle_n maintain_v against_o all_o sort_n of_o gainsayer_n in_o their_o time_n and_o they_o have_v leave_v we_o their_o write_n that_o we_o shall_v also_o maintain_v it_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n that_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o eternal_a salvation_n this_o their_o doctrine_n be_v strong_o oppose_v in_o their_o day_n by_o four_o sort_n of_o man_n 1._o by_o the_o gentile_n not_o yet_o convert_v for_o they_o still_o maintain_v their_o heathenism_n 2._o by_o the_o jew_n not_o yet_o convert_v for_o they_o still_o maintain_v their_o judaisme_n 3._o by_o the_o jew_n not_o full_o convert_v for_o they_o still_o maintain_v a_o mixture_n of_o judaisme_n with_o christianity_n they_o mingle_v together_o the_o jewish_a and_o the_o christian_a religion_n 4._o by_o the_o christian_n convert_v but_o withal_o partly_o pervert_v for_o they_o bring_v in_o untrue_a profession_n and_o ungodly_a practice_n into_o their_o christianity_n they_o corrupt_v and_o deprave_v the_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v according_o very_o careful_a as_o to_o confute_v these_o heresy_n so_o also_o to_o confirm_v and_o establish_v the_o contrary_a truth_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o all_o their_o write_n be_v whole_o take_v up_o either_o in_o those_o confutation_n or_o in_o this_o confirmation_n for_o though_o the_o truth_n it_o self_n be_v but_o one_o yet_o the_o controversy_n concern_v it_o be_v no_o less_o than_o four_o and_o the_o apostle_n think_v it_o necessary_a not_o only_o to_o establish_v the_o truth_n in_o itself_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v truth_n but_o also_o to_o establish_v it_o in_o our_o heart_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v truth_n to_o we_o that_o be_v truth_n without_o controversy_n not_o only_o a_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n but_o also_o a_o manifest_a and_o confess_v mystery_n 1._o tim._n 3._o 16._o wherefore_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o for_o we_o to_o see_v the_o state_n of_o the_o several_a controversy_n that_o so_o we_o may_v the_o more_o clear_o see_v the_o more_o firm_o embrace_v the_o more_o constant_o profess_v the_o truth_n the_o state_n of_o the_o first_o controversy_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v with_o the_o gentile_n consist_v of_o these_o two_o question_n first_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o life_n everlasting_a to_o be_v look_v for_o after_o this_o life_n second_o whether_o that_o life_n everlasting_a be_v to_o be_v obtain_v by_o continue_v in_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o heathen_a or_o by_o turn_v to_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o christian_n and_o in_o both_o these_o question_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v declare_v or_o rather_o demonstrate_v against_o the_o heathenish_a superstition_n out_o of_o the_o principle_n of_o natural_a reason_n and_o that_o truth_n sum_v up_o by_o st._n paul_n 1_o thes._n 1._o 9_o 10._o how_o you_o turn_v to_o god_n from_o idol_n to_o serve_v the_o live_n and_o true_a god_n and_o to_o wait_v for_o his_o son_n from_o heaven_n who_o he_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a even_o jesus_n which_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v there_o be_v a_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a therefore_o the_o soul_n die_v not_o with_o the_o body_n but_o live_v eternal_o and_o this_o eternal_a life_n be_v not_o to_o be_v get_v by_o serve_a idol_n but_o by_o serve_v the_o live_n and_o true_a god_n and_o there_o be_v no_o serve_v he_o but_o by_o wait_v for_o his_o son_n from_o heaven_n thus_o be_v the_o christian_a religion_n justify_v against_o heathenism_n which_o afford_v the_o first_o controversy_n the_o state_n of_o the_o second_o controversy_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v with_o the_o jew_n not_o convert_v consist_v but_o of_o this_o one_o question_n whether_o eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v obtain_v by_o the_o jewish_a or_o by_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o we_o find_v the_o apostle_n still_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o ground_n of_o the_o jew_n religion_n and_o so_o acknowledge_v by_o themselves_o without_o the_o least_o doubt_n or_o contradiction_n that_o salvation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v by_o moses_n but_o by_o christ_n so_o s._n peter_n in_o his_o several_a sermon_n act_n 2._o and_o 3._o and_o 4._o christus_fw-la messiah_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o subject_n of_o they_o all_o this_o he_o prove_v act_v 2._o for_o that_o he_o have_v give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o both_o his_o proof_n be_v out_o of_o the_o old_a
nature_n and_o therefore_o partake_v of_o god_n property_n both_o incommunicable_a and_o communicable_a may_v be_v think_v a_o impertinent_a discourse_n by_o some_o because_o it_o deal_v in_o speculatives_n and_o perchance_o a_o impious_a discourse_n by_o other_o because_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o destroy_v practic_n and_o so_o join_v hand_n with_o the_o sacrilegious_a profaneness_n of_o this_o age_n which_o trade_v whole_o in_o destructive_n not_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o man_n but_o also_o of_o god_n himself_o yet_o since_o the_o end_n of_o religion_n be_v to_o bring_v man_n to_o god_n it_o can_v be_v amiss_o to_o see_v how_o near_o the_o work_n thereof_o conduce_v to_o that_o end_n and_o it_o may_v be_v proper_a if_o not_o necessary_a to_o show_v the_o excellency_n of_o religion_n that_o man_n eye_n be_v dazzle_v with_o the_o admirable_a beauty_n their_o heart_n may_v be_v inflame_v with_o the_o divine_a perfection_n of_o holiness_n for_o holiness_n and_o religion_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n essential_o though_o they_o be_v different_a in_o our_o apprehension_n therefore_o s._n peter_n call_v upon_o we_o to_o be_v religious_a call_v upon_o we_o in_o these_o word_n 1_o s._n pet._n 1._o 15_o 16._o but_o as_o he_o which_o have_v call_v you_o be_v holy_a so_o be_v you_o holy_a in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n because_o it_o be_v write_v be_v you_o holy_a for_o i_o be_o holy_a where_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o we_o be_v call_v upon_o for_o holiness_n from_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o only_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n the_o father_n for_o it_o be_v write_v and_o by_o the_o example_n of_o god_n the_o son_n but_o as_o he_o which_o have_v call_v you_o be_v holy_a but_o also_o by_o the_o communion_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v you_o holy_a for_o i_o be_o holy_a as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v holiness_n can_v have_v no_o fellowship_n with_o impurity_n therefore_o unless_o you_o will_v be_v holy_a you_o must_v not_o only_o renounce_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n command_v the_o example_n of_o god_n conduct_v but_o also_o the_o fellowship_n of_o god_n converse_v and_o communicate_v with_o you_o for_o the_o force_n of_o the_o argument_n consist_v in_o the_o proper_a nature_n of_o god_n and_o our_o relation_n to_o and_o with_o god_n according_o i_o can_v better_o show_v the_o excellency_n of_o religion_n then_o by_o show_v how_o near_o its_o holiness_n come_v to_o the_o very_a nature_n and_o essence_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o then_o none_o will_v doubt_v but_o the_o angelical_a doctor_n do_v right_o say_v nomen_fw-la sanctitatis_fw-la duo_fw-la videtur_fw-la importare_fw-la munditiem_fw-la &_o firmitatem_fw-la that_o holiness_n import_v two_o thing_n purity_n for_o so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v one_o far_o remove_v from_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o constancy_n for_o so_o sanctum_fw-la or_o sancitum_fw-la &_o lege_fw-la firmatum_fw-la be_v all_o one_o and_o there_o be_v a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o both_o these_o in_o that_o man_n that_o will_v be_v true_o religious_a for_o he_o that_o will_v be_v join_v to_o the_o most_o high_a must_v be_v far_o remove_v from_o the_o thing_n below_o there_o be_v the_o purity_n and_o he_o that_o will_v be_v join_v to_o the_o first_o beginning_n and_o last_o end_n which_o be_v whole_o immovable_a must_v be_v firm_a and_o immovable_a in_o his_o conjunction_n there_o be_v the_o constancy_n therefore_o say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 8._o 38._o certus_n sum_fw-la quòd_fw-la neque_fw-la mors_fw-la neque_fw-la vita_fw-la separabit_fw-la i_o à_fw-la charitate_fw-la dei_fw-la i_o be_o sure_a and_o certain_a not_o only_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v i_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n he_o that_o know_v it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o love_v religion_n and_o to_o love_n god_n will_v never_o be_v separate_v from_o its_o love_n and_o he_o that_o know_v religion_n to_o be_v the_o service_n of_o god_n will_v easy_o acknowledge_v that_o such_o as_o be_v the_o master_n such_o be_v his_o service_n and_o therefore_o all_o divine_n agree_v in_o this_o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o true_a divinity_n but_o some_o have_v likewise_o say_v that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o commandment_n make_v the_o first_o and_o second_o but_o one_o do_v teach_v we_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o religion_n the_o proper_a service_n of_o god_n for_o religion_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o immediate_a worship_n of_o god_n religio_fw-la distinctiùs_fw-la non_fw-la quemlibet_fw-la sed_fw-la dei_fw-la cultum_fw-la significat_fw-la say_v s._n aug._n de_fw-fr civit._fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 10._o cap._n 1._o if_o we_o say_v worship_n we_o may_v possible_o mean_v a_o civil_a or_o a_o moral_a worship_n but_o if_o we_o say_v religion_n we_o can_v mean_v no_o other_o but_o divine_a worship_n or_o the_o immediate_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o one_o attribute_n of_o god_n but_o show_v in_o some_o sort_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n for_o such_o as_o god_n be_v in_o himself_o such_o also_o be_v the_o religion_n that_o serve_v and_o please_v he_o i_o will_v according_o endeavour_v with_o god_n grace_n to_o show_v the_o nature_n of_o religion_n from_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o god_n yet_o with_o such_o a_o method_n as_o shall_v not_o seek_v to_o satisfy_v the_o curious_a by_o its_o exactness_n but_o only_o to_o establish_v the_o conscientious_a by_o its_o godliness_n always_o remember_v that_o when_o god_n show_v a_o mortal_a man_n his_o glory_n as_o he_o do_v to_o moses_n exod._n 33._o 23._o though_o he_o may_v see_v much_o yet_o much_o more_o there_o be_v which_o can_v be_v see_v nor_o can_v any_o divine_a whatsoever_o see_v so_o much_o of_o god_n as_o he_o do_v desire_n nor_o can_v he_o express_v so_o much_o as_o he_o do_v see_v it_o be_v enough_o therefore_o if_o i_o draw_v such_o a_o scheme_n of_o god_n attribute_n as_o be_v fit_a to_o instruct_v myself_o and_o other_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o true_a godliness_n god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o so_o be_v his_o service_n altogether_o spiritual_a s._n john_n 4._o 24._o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o they_o that_o worship_v he_o must_v worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n there_o must_v be_v nothing_o in_o his_o worship_n of_o carnal_a invention_n and_o much_o less_o of_o carnal_a affection_n for_o to_o be_v carnal_o mind_v be_v death_n but_o to_o be_v spiritual_o mind_v be_v life_n and_o peace_n rom._n 8._o 6._o wherein_o we_o have_v describe_v in_o few_o word_n the_o true_a and_o the_o false_a religion_n the_o one_o be_v spiritual_a the_o other_o carnal_a they_o be_v both_o describe_v 1._o in_o themselves_o to_o be_v mind_v for_o religion_n call_v for_o the_o soul_n whether_o we_o serve_v god_n or_o mammon_n 2._o in_o their_o cause_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o one_o be_v flesh_n of_o the_o other_o spirit_n 3._o in_o their_o effect_n the_o effect_n of_o the_o one_o be_v life_n and_o the_o assurance_n of_o it_o peace_n the_o effect_n of_o the_o other_o be_v death_n religion_n then_o itself_o be_v to_o be_v mind_v it_o always_o engage_v the_o soul_n and_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v to_o be_v spiritual_o mind_v eagage_v the_o soul_n according_a to_o the_o dictate_v of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n and_o indeed_o religion_n have_v the_o chief_a property_n of_o a_o spirit_n for_o 1._o a_o spirit_n be_v invisible_a and_o imperceptible_a by_o the_o sense_n so_o be_v the_o true_a religion_n the_o natural_a man_n perceive_v it_o not_o 1_o cor._n 2._o 14._o and_o s._n paul_n call_v the_o thing_n of_o religion_n spiritual_a thing_n rom._n 15._o 27._o the_o gentile_n have_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o their_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o 1_o cor._n 9_o 11._o if_o we_o have_v sow_v unto_o you_o spiritual_a thing_n take_v heed_n then_o of_o a_o carnal_a eye_n in_o god_n worship_n that_o love_v to_o look_v upon_o a_o image_n but_o much_o more_o of_o a_o carnal_a affection_n that_o love_v to_o look_v upon_o itself_o 2._o a_o spirit_n have_v life_n in_o itself_o and_o give_v life_n unto_o the_o body_n so_o religion_n have_v life_n in_o itself_o and_o give_v life_n to_o those_o that_o be_v religious_a s._n john_n 17._o 3._o this_o be_v life_n eternal_a that_o they_o may_v know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n which_o can_v be_v without_o a_o practice_n answerable_a to_o it_o be_v the_o true_a religion_n and_o that_o be_v life_n eternal_a both_o formal_o in_o itself_o and_o effectual_o in_o regard_n of_o we_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o the_o truth_n
but_o also_o the_o life_n s._n john_n 14._o 6._o and_o so_o also_o be_v his_o word_n s._n john_n 6._o 63._o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o they_o be_v spirit_n and_o they_o be_v life_n no_o part_v christ_n word_n from_o spirit_n nor_o spirit_n from_o life_n and_o again_o verse_n 68_o thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n let_v nothing_o go_v for_o christ_n word_n which_o be_v not_o spirit_n and_o life_n and_o so_o spirit_n as_o to_o give_v life_n wherefore_o if_o you_o see_v a_o religion_n a_o fraught_n with_o bead_n picture_n crucifix_n and_o such_o outward_a ordinance_n be_v afraid_a of_o it_o for_o these_o and_o the_o like_a be_v man_n carnal_a invention_n mere_a carnal_a image_n this_o be_v not_o religion_n but_o superstition_n again_o if_o you_o see_v a_o religion_n fraught_v with_o envy_n malice_n hatred_n uncharitableness_n spiritual_a pride_n perverseness_n profaneness_n licentiousness_n disobedience_n novelty_n singularity_n be_v afraid_a of_o it_o for_o these_o and_o such_o like_a be_v man_n carnal_a practice_n carnal_a imagination_n this_o be_v not_o religion_n but_o faction_n such_o as_o the_o apostle_n cast_v down_o 2_o cor._n 10._o 5._o and_o the_o prophet_n seem_v to_o prophesy_v against_o jer._n 43._o 13._o for_o what_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o sun_n among_o we_o but_o the_o humorous_a imagination_n of_o those_o that_o abuse_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o this_o trial_n or_o proof_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v substantial_a it_o concern_v the_o very_a nature_n and_o essence_n of_o it_o even_o as_o to_o be_v a_o spirit_n be_v the_o very_a nature_n and_o substance_n of_o god_n there_o be_v other_o proof_n that_o be_v also_o essential_a proof_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n though_o they_o be_v not_o take_v from_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n but_o from_o his_o property_n and_o so_o that_o be_v the_o true_a religion_n who_o property_n come_v near_a to_o the_o property_n of_o god_n i_o will_v give_v you_o a_o short_a scheme_n of_o both_o together_o that_o see_v god_n himself_o in_o your_o religion_n you_o may_v love_v it_o with_o all_o your_o soul_n with_o all_o your_o mind_n and_o with_o all_o your_o strength_n because_o so_o you_o be_v bind_v to_o love_v your_o god_n god_n can_v be_v know_v any_o further_a in_o his_o substance_n then_o that_o he_o be_v a_o spirit_n and_o so_o according_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n whole_o spiritual_a but_o the_o great_a knowledge_n we_o have_v of_o god_n the_o only_a eternal_a spirit_n be_v by_o his_o property_n and_o by_o his_o attribute_n his_o property_n be_v internal_a perfection_n belong_v to_o he_o as_o a_o spirit_n mere_o in_o regard_n of_o himself_o as_o simplicity_n immutability_n and_o the_o like_a his_o attribute_n be_v as_o it_o be_v external_a perfection_n belong_v to_o he_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o creature_n as_o he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o all_o flesh_n as_o mercy_n justice_n liberality_n and_o the_o like_a or_o if_o you_o desire_v not_o to_o distinguish_v between_o god_n property_n and_o his_o attribute_n you_o may_v say_v that_o the_o property_n of_o god_n be_v either_o such_o as_o remove_v from_o he_o all_o kind_n of_o imperfection_n that_o be_v in_o the_o creature_n as_o simplicity_n which_o remove_v from_o he_o composition_n immutability_n which_o remove_v from_o he_o changeableness_n immensity_n and_o eternity_n which_o remove_v from_o he_o circumscription_n or_o confinement_n the_o one_o of_o place_n the_o other_o of_o time_n and_o these_o be_v call_v incommunicable_a property_n because_o they_o be_v not_o communicable_a to_o any_o creature_n or_o the_o property_n of_o god_n be_v such_o as_o do_v assign_v to_o god_n all_o manner_n of_o perfection_n first_o in_o his_o understanding_n as_o wisdom_n and_o truth_n second_o in_o his_o will_n as_o goodness_n and_o liberty_n three_o in_o his_o power_n of_o action_n as_o omnipotency_n and_o these_o be_v call_v communicable_a property_n because_o they_o be_v communicate_v to_o the_o creature_n and_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o creature_n though_o in_o a_o proportion_n and_o perfection_n infinite_o short_a of_o what_o be_v in_o the_o creator_n god_n bless_v for_o ever_o thus_o angel_n and_o man_n have_v truth_n and_o goodness_n and_o power_n though_o not_o a_o unerring_a truth_n not_o a_o all-sufficient_a goodness_n not_o a_o almighty_a power_n but_o they_o have_v not_o simplicity_n infinity_o immutability_n eternity_n which_o be_v the_o incommunicable_a property_n and_o herein_o consist_v the_o supereminencie_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n above_o any_o creature_n whatsoever_o that_o it_o share_v even_o in_o these_o incommunicable_a property_n of_o god_n even_o in_o his_o simplicity_n infinity_o immutability_n eternity_n and_o first_o it_o share_v in_o his_o simplicity_n now_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v such_o that_o it_o admit_v of_o no_o composition_n at_o all_o neither_o physical_a composition_n of_o matter_n and_o form_n nor_o logical_a of_o subject_n and_o accident_n nor_o metaphysical_a of_o act_n and_o power_n whereas_o the_o pure_a spirit_n that_o be_v admit_v of_o logical_a and_o metaphysical_a composition_n though_o not_o of_o physical_a god_n only_o except_v who_o admit_v of_o neither_o so_o aquinas_n pr._n part_n qu._n 40._o propter_fw-la divinam_fw-la simplicitatem_fw-la est_fw-la duplex_fw-la identitas_fw-la in_o divinis_fw-la eorum_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la creatis_fw-la differunt_fw-la quia_fw-la enim_fw-la illa_fw-la excludit_fw-la compositionem_fw-la subjecti_fw-la &_o accidentis_fw-la quicquid_fw-la attribuitur_fw-la deo_fw-la est_fw-la ejus_fw-la essentia_fw-la quia_fw-la autem_fw-la excludit_fw-la compositionem_fw-la formae_fw-la &_o materiae_fw-la in_fw-la divinis_fw-la idem_fw-la est_fw-la abstractum_fw-la &_o concretum_fw-la because_o of_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n there_o be_v a_o twofold_a identity_n in_o god_n which_o be_v not_o in_o any_o creature_n first_o a_o identity_n of_o essence_n and_o attribute_n because_o there_o be_v in_o he_o no_o composition_n of_o substance_n and_o accident_n second_o a_o identity_n of_o abstract_n and_o concrete_a because_o there_o be_v in_o he_o no_o composition_n of_o form_n and_o matter_n and_o all_o action_n proceed_v from_o form_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o who_o be_v the_o agent_n in_o and_o of_o himself_o can_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o pure_a form_n without_o any_o mixture_n of_o any_o matter_n nam_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la primò_fw-la &_o per_fw-la se_fw-la agens_fw-la patet_fw-la quòd_fw-la sit_fw-la primò_fw-la &_o per_fw-la se_fw-la forma_fw-la 1_o par_fw-fr qu._n 3._o art_n 2._o so_o likewise_o religion_n admit_v of_o no_o compositiou_n but_o must_v still_o remain_v in_o its_o own_o simplicity_n for_o 1._o there_o be_v in_o religion_n no_o physical_a composition_n of_o matter_n and_o form_n some_o will_v make_v decency_n the_o accidental_a form_n of_o religion_n other_o the_o evangelical_n counsel_v the_o essential_a form_n and_o perfection_n of_o it_o but_o both_o be_v mistake_v for_o the_o same_o holiness_n be_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o christian_a that_o be_v of_o the_o jew_n though_o not_o the_o same_o beauty_n of_o holiness_n there_o be_v no_o separate_n the_o essential_a matter_n of_o religion_n from_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o it_o and_o what_o be_v not_o intrinsical_o holy_a that_o be_v both_o material_o and_o formal_o can_v proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o substantial_a part_n of_o religion_n some_o look_n upon_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n as_o the_o formal_a part_n upon_o the_o other_o duty_n of_o the_o decalogue_n as_o the_o material_a part_n of_o religion_n but_o indeed_o such_o consideration_n be_v mere_o notional_a they_o be_v not_o real_a for_o no_o man_n can_v reject_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o he_o must_v also_o reject_v a_o commandment_n nor_o can_v any_o man_n wrong_v any_o commandment_n but_o he_o must_v also_o wrong_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n thus_o can_v you_o not_o expunge_v or_o deprave_v any_o commandment_n that_o contain_v your_o duty_n towards_o god_n but_o you_o must_v expunge_v or_o deprave_v some_o article_n of_o faith_n concern_v he_o so_o also_o of_o the_o second_o table_n he_o that_o deprave_v any_o one_o of_o those_o commandment_n deprave_v those_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o concern_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n last_o he_o that_o deny_v or_o deprave_v that_o part_n of_o god_n law_n which_o concern_v himself_o without_o any_o relation_n to_o his_o neighbour_n do_v also_o deny_v or_o deprave_v some_o of_o those_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o concern_v himself_o as_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o life_n everlasting_a as_o for_o example_n you_o can_v think_v that_o any_o common_a drunkard_n or_o unclean_a person_n do_v so_o much_o as_o serious_o consider_v much_o less_o true_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o his_o body_n
dominion_n both_o these_o grand_a faction_n from_o several_a principle_n infer_v one_o and_o the_o same_o conclusion_n because_o both_o by_o their_o addition_n deprave_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o text_n so_o that_o if_o we_o will_v needs_o allow_v that_o our_o gloss_n may_v be_v addition_n to_o the_o rule_n we_o must_v of_o necessity_n overthrow_v the_o rule_n and_o by_o not_o allow_v religion_n to_o be_v altogeth_a at_o once_o we_o shall_v come_v to_o make_v it_o none_o at_o all_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v but_o religion_n have_v have_v and_o may_v have_v addition_n in_o regard_n of_o man_n but_o not_o in_o regard_n of_o itself_o si_fw-mi de_fw-fr prophetia_fw-la loquamur_fw-la in_fw-la quantum_fw-la ordinaturadfidem_fw-la deitatis_fw-la sic_fw-la quidem_fw-la crevit_fw-la secundùm_fw-la tres_fw-la temporum_fw-la distinctiones_fw-la scil_n ante_fw-la legem_fw-la sub_fw-la lege_fw-la &_o sub_fw-la gratia_n non_fw-la autem_fw-la quatenus_fw-la per_fw-la eam_fw-la humanum_fw-la genus_fw-la in_o suis_fw-la operibus_fw-la dirigitur_fw-la say_v aquinas_n 22_o ae_z qu._n 174._o art_n 6._o prophecy_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v receive_v increase_n as_o to_o article_n of_o faith_n towards_o god_n for_o he_o have_v reveal_v himself_o more_o full_o under_o the_o gospel_n then_o under_o the_o law_n and_o more_o full_o under_o the_o law_n then_o before_o it_o but_o not_o as_o to_o duty_n of_o life_n either_o towards_o god_n or_o towards_o man_n the_o christian_n know_v and_o beleeu_n more_o than_o the_o jew_n because_o christ_n be_v more_o full_o reveal_v unto_o he_o then_o to_o the_o jew_n but_o yet_o christ_n be_v still_o the_o same_o to_o both_o the_o same_o yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o heb._n 13._o 8._o the_o same_o before_o the_o law_n yesterday_n under_o the_o law_n to_o day_n and_o under_o the_o gospel_n for_o ever_o one_o christian_n may_v know_v and_o believe_v more_o than_o another_o nay_o more_o than_o himself_o for_o as_o he_o increase_v in_o year_n so_o also_o in_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n yet_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o at_o all_o time_n only_o more_o full_o understand_v at_o one_o time_n then_o at_o another_o for_o which_o reason_n god_n require_v a_o preparation_n of_o mind_n in_o every_o true_a believer_n to_o be_v ready_a to_o believe_v more_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v reveal_v to_o he_o to_o be_v god_n truth_n and_o to_o do_v more_o when_o it_o shall_v appear_v to_o he_o to_o be_v for_o god_n glory_n the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o position_n conclude_v it_o impossible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o certain_a catalogue_n of_o the_o fundamental_o of_o faith_n not_o only_o for_o all_o man_n but_o also_o for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o man_n at_o all_o time_n because_o that_o may_v be_v reveal_v to_o one_o which_o be_v not_o to_o another_o nay_o to_o one_o man_n at_o this_o time_n which_o be_v not_o at_o that_o time_n the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o position_n conclude_v it_o necessary_a that_o the_o evangelical_n counsel_n shall_v sometime_o become_v a_o piece_n of_o the_o law_n namely_o if_o the_o case_n be_v put_v that_o a_o man_n can_v in_o any_o of_o those_o particular_n of_o voluntary_a poverty_n obedience_n or_o chastity_n show_v or_o exercise_v more_o full_o and_o sincere_o his_o love_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o say_v s._n hieroms_n gloss_n upon_o s._n matth._n 19_o 20._o all_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o keep_v from_o my_o youth_n up_o mentitur_fw-la adolescens_fw-la the_o young_a man_n lie_v for_o if_o he_o have_v indeed_o keep_v this_o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o he_o will_v not_o have_v be_v grieve_v for_o be_v command_v to_o sell_v all_o and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o poor_a no_o more_o than_o he_o be_v grieve_v for_o keep_v all_o unto_o himself_o and_o origen_n tell_v we_o it_o be_v write_v in_o some_o other_o gospel_n that_o he_o have_v meet_v withal_o in_o hebrew_n but_o sure_a not_o of_o sufficient_a authority_n to_o discountenance_v the_o greek_a for_o aquinas_n that_o tell_v we_o this_o story_n say_v si_fw-la placeat_fw-la alicui_fw-la suscipere_fw-la illud_fw-la if_o any_o man_n please_v to_o receive_v it_o that_o when_o the_o young_a man_n begin_v to_o scratch_v his_o head_n at_o this_o say_n the_o lord_n reply_v unto_o he_o how_o do_v thou_o say_v thou_o have_v keep_v the_o law_n which_o require_v to_o love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o and_o behold_v many_o of_o thy_o brethren_n the_o child_n of_o abraham_n be_v ready_a to_o die_v for_o hunger_n upon_o the_o dunghill_n while_o not_o only_o thy_o body_n but_o also_o thy_o house_n be_v full_a even_o to_o superfluity_n aquin._n 22_o ae_z qu._n 189._o art_n 1._o resp_n ad_fw-la 1._o we_o must_v therefore_o say_v with_o gulielmus_fw-la de_fw-la sancto_fw-la amore_fw-la in_fw-la libro_fw-la de_fw-la periculis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la paupertatem_fw-la praecipit_fw-la non_fw-la actualem_fw-la sed_fw-la habitualem_fw-la scil_n si_fw-la gloria_fw-la christi_fw-la id_fw-la postulârit_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la ait_fw-la luc._n 14._o 26._o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la venit_fw-la ad_fw-la i_o &_o non_fw-la odit_fw-la patrem_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la esse_fw-la meus_fw-la discipulus_fw-la non_fw-la praecipit_fw-la parent_n contemnere_fw-la sed_fw-la tantùm_fw-la si_fw-la christo_fw-la se_fw-la opponant_fw-la that_o this_o be_v not_o a_o counsel_n but_o a_o command_n whereby_o our_o bless_a saviour_n command_v though_o not_o actual_a yet_o habitual_a poverty_n though_o not_o a_o real_a yet_o a_o ready_a forsake_v of_o all_o if_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n shall_v so_o require_v as_o when_o he_o say_v s._n luk._n 14._o 26._o if_o any_o man_n come_v to_o i_o and_o hate_v not_o his_o father_n he_o can_v be_v my_o disciple_n the_o command_n be_v but_o conditional_a to_o wit_n if_o his_o father_n oppose_v his_o saviour_n there_o he_o must_v go_v from_o the_o one_o to_o come_v and_o cleave_v to_o the_o other_o and_o so_o aquinas_n himself_o state_v this_o question_n say_v nullus_fw-la est_fw-la actus_fw-la perfectionis_fw-la sub_fw-la consilio_fw-la cadens_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o aliquo_fw-la eventu_fw-la non_fw-la cadat_fw-la sub_fw-la praecepto_fw-la quasi_fw-la de_fw-fr necessitate_v salutis_fw-la existens_fw-la 22●e_n qu._n 124._o art_n 3._o ad_fw-la 1._o there_o be_v no_o act_n of_o perfection_n under_o a_o evangelical_n counsel_n but_o may_v in_o some_o case_n fall_n under_o a_o precept_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o that_o man_n salvation_n and_o in_o this_o particular_a case_n of_o voluntary_a poverty_n he_o say_v thus_o abrenunciatio_fw-la propriarum_fw-la facultatum_fw-la in_o actu_fw-la est_fw-la quoddam_fw-la perfectionis_fw-la instrumentum_fw-la sed_fw-la secundùm_fw-la praeparationem_fw-la animi_fw-la pertinet_fw-la directè_fw-la ad_fw-la perfectionem_fw-la 22_o ae_z qu._n 185._o ad_fw-la 2._o for_o a_o man_n to_o renounce_v his_o property_n actual_o that_o he_o may_v betake_v himself_o whole_o to_o meditation_n and_o prayer_n do_v conduce_v instrumental_o to_o perfection_n but_o for_o he_o to_o renounce_v it_o potential_o in_o the_o preparation_n of_o his_o mind_n do_v appertain_v direct_o to_o perfection_n that_o be_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o christianity_n and_o so_o in_o effect_n he_o say_v thus_o much_o he_o that_o will_v not_o part_v with_o his_o estate_n when_o christ_n call_v for_o it_o be_v far_o from_o show_v himself_o a_o good_a christian._n how_o little_a this_o precept_n be_v now_o observe_v by_o those_o who_o see_v their_o poor_a brethren_n ready_a to_o starve_v for_o christ_n both_o at_o home_n and_o in_o foreign_a country_n and_o yet_o neither_o lay_v their_o misery_n to_o heart_n nor_o lay_v their_o hand_n to_o their_o relief_n christ_n do_v now_o see_v and_o will_v hereafter_o judge_v when_o he_o will_v not_o only_o say_v depart_v you_o curse_v to_o those_o that_o make_v they_o hungry_a thirsty_a and_o naked_a but_o also_o to_o those_o that_o let_v they_o continue_v so_o st._n mat._n 25._o 41_o 42._o and_o good_a reason_n for_o such_o man_n forget_v their_o brother_n joseph_n in_o the_o pit_n sit_v down_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v while_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o perish_v they_o forget_v themselves_o and_o renounce_v their_o own_o bowel_n they_o forget_v their_o god_n and_o renounce_v his_o commandment_n not_o only_o as_o enforce_v by_o right_a of_o dominion_n for_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o he_o may_v call_v for_o all_o without_o show_v any_o other_o cause_n for_o it_o but_o also_o as_o be_v enforce_v by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n for_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o saint_n paul_n use_v more_o argument_n to_o stir_v up_o the_o corinthian_n to_o a_o liberal_a contribution_n for_o the_o poor_a saint_n at_o jerusalem_n than_o he_o use_v to_o the_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o any_o other_o christian_a duty_n whatsoever_o for_o he_o have_v concern_v this_o duty_n almost_o two_o whole_a chapter_n together_o 2_o cor._n 8_o and_o 9_o chap._n and_o almost_o as_o many_o argument_n as_o verse_n in_o those_o
man_n shall_v be_v wise_a than_o his_o enemy_n for_o none_o be_v enemy_n to_o good_a man_n that_o have_v not_o first_o lose_v their_o wit_n as_o well_o as_o their_o honesty_n therefore_o he_o add_v further_a i_o have_v more_o understanding_n than_o all_o my_o teacher_n v_o 99_o and_o lest_o we_o shall_v still_o object_v that_o the_o teacher_n be_v not_o always_o the_o wise_a especial_o if_o they_o teach_v too_o soon_o before_o they_o have_v be_v diligent_a learner_n he_o add_v yet_o further_o i_o understand_v more_o than_o the_o ancient_n v_o 100_o that_o be_v than_o those_o that_o have_v be_v long_a learner_n before_o they_o become_v teacher_n that_o be_v the_o most_o profitable_a wisdom_n which_o make_v a_o man_n wise_a than_o his_o enemy_n for_o it_o keep_v he_o from_o be_v circumvent_v that_o be_v the_o most_o honourable_a wisdom_n which_o make_v a_o man_n wise_a than_o his_o teacher_n for_o it_o give_v he_o a_o preeminence_n of_o understand_v far_o above_o his_o condition_n that_o though_o he_o be_v call_v to_o be_v a_o learner_n yet_o he_o be_v enable_v to_o be_v a_o teacher_n last_o that_o be_v the_o most_o infallible_a wisdom_n which_o make_v a_o man_n wise_a than_o the_o ancient_n for_o that_o give_v he_o a_o preeminence_n of_o understanding_n above_o the_o condition_n of_o mortality_n which_o can_v attain_v to_o no_o great_a wisdom_n than_o such_o as_o be_v gain_v by_o long_a travel_n of_o study_n &_o confirm_v by_o long_a experience_n of_o year_n so_o that_o if_o we_o desire_v that_o wisdom_n which_o be_v most_o profitable_a most_o honourable_a and_o most_o infallible_a we_o must_v do_v as_o this_o holy_a man_n do_v converse_v more_o with_o god_n then_o with_o man_n for_o so_o he_o profess_v five_o 104._o through_o thy_o precept_n i_o get_v understanding_n we_o may_v see_v that_o understanding_n be_v to_o be_v get_v by_o study_v the_o precept_n of_o man_n but_o we_o can_v get_v it_o saving_o but_o by_o study_v the_o precept_n of_o god_n for_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n say_v the_o light_n dwell_v with_o god_n dan._n 2._o 22._o and_o s._n john_n say_v he_o that_o love_v his_o brother_n abide_v in_o the_o light_n what_o be_v this_o light_n but_o the_o truth_n or_o the_o true_a religion_n which_o have_v these_o two_o property_n of_o light_n that_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o it_o enlighten_v and_o reprove_v it_o enlighten_v the_o understanding_n by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n it_o reprove_v the_o will_n the_o affection_n and_o the_o action_n for_o the_o practice_n of_o evil_n second_o religion_n be_v in_o effect_n omniscient_a because_o it_o make_v we_o know_v all_o thing_n beside_o ourselves_o that_o be_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v proper_a and_o profitable_a for_o we_o to_o know_v thing_n wherein_o be_v the_o true_a comfort_n of_o this_o life_n &_o the_o true_a blessing_n of_o the_o next_o so_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 2._o 15._o the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v or_o discern_v all_o thing_n the_o more_o he_o be_v spiritual_a the_o more_o he_o be_v able_a to_o discern_v the_o more_o he_o increase_v in_o religion_n the_o more_o he_o increase_v in_o true_a wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n as_o the_o man_n in_o the_o gospel_n when_o his_o eye_n be_v first_o open_v mistake_v man_n for_o tree_n but_o afterward_o when_o he_o be_v perfect_o cure_v he_o can_v distinguish_v both_o aright_o so_o the_o spiritual_a man_n at_o his_o first_o conversion_n have_v but_o a_o confuse_a knowledge_n of_o the_o thing_n necessary_a to_o his_o salvation_n but_o afterward_o he_o come_v exact_o to_o judge_v and_o to_o discern_v they_o all_o nor_o will_v his_o faith_n whereby_o he_o know_v in_o part_n leave_v he_o till_o he_o come_v by_o degree_n to_o a_o clear_a vision_n let_v several_a know_a man_n all_o rejoice_v in_o the_o excellency_n of_o their_o several_a knowledge_n but_o let_v this_o be_v the_o privilege_n only_o of_o the_o religious_a man_n that_o he_o alone_o know_v who_o he_o have_v believe_v and_o who_o he_o may_v trust_v for_o he_o alone_o be_v able_a to_o know_v how_o god_n dispose_v of_o he_o before_o his_o life_n and_o how_o he_o will_v dispose_v of_o he_o after_o his_o death_n chap._n vi_o the_o assurance_n that_o we_o have_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n in_o that_o it_o resemble_v god_n in_o his_o communicable_a property_n as_o truth_n goodness_n purity_n and_o liberty_n it_o be_v the_o special_a privilege_n of_o the_o good_a christian_a that_o the_o same_o religion_n do_v make_v he_o imitate_v god_n here_o which_o will_v make_v he_o enjoy_v god_n hereafter_o for_o the_o same_o god_n who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o religion_n be_v also_o the_o best_a pattern_n of_o it_o because_o religion_n resemble_v he_o not_o only_a per_fw-la modum_fw-la vestigii_fw-la but_o also_o per_fw-la modum_fw-la imaginis_fw-la not_o only_o as_o have_v his_o footstep_n for_o so_o every_o creature_n represent_v the_o creator_n but_o also_o as_o have_v the_o exact_a lineament_n and_o portraiture_n of_o his_o very_a image_n so_o that_o god_n service_n be_v best_a know_v by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o himself_o and_o the_o property_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v best_a declare_v by_o declare_v the_o property_n of_o god_n the_o incommunicable_a property_n have_v be_v already_o speak_v of_o his_o simplicity_n infinity_o immutability_n eternity_n and_o the_o three_o branch_n or_o adjunct_n thereof_o his_o omnipotency_n all-sufficiency_n omnisciency_n i_o now_o come_v to_o the_o communicable_a property_n of_o god_n which_o be_v especial_o these_o three_o truth_n in_o his_o understanding_n goodness_n in_o his_o will_n and_o activity_n in_o his_o operative_a faculty_n answerable_a to_o his_o truth_n and_o goodness_n for_o the_o intellective_a faculty_n be_v vain_a without_o the_o affective_a the_o affective_a without_o the_o operative_a and_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o proportion_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o one_o be_v also_o necessary_o the_o proportion_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o other_o god_n first_o know_v than_o will_n then_o work_v as_o he_o know_v so_o he_o will_v not_o irrational_o as_o he_o will_v so_o he_o work_v not_o ineffectual_o and_o so_o be_v religion_n very_o intellective_a and_o very_o affective_a and_o very_o active_a or_o operative_a these_o three_o property_n be_v all_o join_v together_o deut._n 4._o 6._o keep_v therefore_o and_o do_v for_o this_o be_v your_o wisdom_n and_o your_o understanding_n where_o we_o have_v wisdom_n for_o the_o intellective_a keep_v or_o observe_v for_o the_o affective_a and_o do_v for_o the_o operative_a faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n according_o divine_v tell_v we_o there_o be_v some_o virtue_n that_o be_v catholic_n or_o universal_a belong_v to_o the_o whole_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o general_a and_o have_v alike_o influence_n upon_o all_o the_o commandment_n or_o upon_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o religion_n whether_o they_o concern_v god_n immediate_o in_o himself_o or_o mediate_o in_o his_o image_n and_o these_o catholic_n virtue_n be_v wisdom_n and_o prudence_n in_o the_o understanding_n integrity_n alacrity_n and_o constancy_n in_o the_o will_n and_o zeal_n and_o perseverance_n in_o the_o action_n that_o election_n affection_n action_n may_v all_o join_v together_o to_o glorify_v he_o who_o be_v the_o first_o truth_n to_o direct_v our_o election_n the_o last_o good_a to_o satisfy_v our_o affection_n and_o the_o chief_a excellency_n to_o excite_v and_o provoke_v our_o action_n wherefore_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o religion_n to_o make_v a_o man_n more_o judicious_a more_o affectionate_a and_o more_o industrious_a than_o he_o be_v before_o though_o he_o have_v never_o so_o pierce_v a_o judgement_n never_o so_o strong_a and_o vehement_a affection_n never_o so_o industrious_a a_o action_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n though_o it_o consist_v of_o these_o three_o faculty_n the_o intellective_a or_o know_v the_o affective_a or_o desire_v the_o operative_a or_o work_a the_o intellective_a faculty_n whereby_o it_o know_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v the_o affective_a whereby_o it_o desire_v to_o do_v it_o and_o the_o operative_a or_o active_a whereby_o it_o sulfil_v that_o desire_n in_o do_v yet_o this_o very_a soul_n do_v not_o can_v right_o know_v or_o desire_n or_o do_v till_o it_o be_v thorough_o instruct_v exalt_a and_o quicken_v by_o religion_n nay_o on_o the_o contrary_a all_o the_o while_o it_o continue_v irreligious_a it_o be_v stupid_a in_o knowledge_n perverse_a in_o affection_n and_o sluggish_a in_o action_n for_o though_o there_o be_v in_o all_o spirit_n a_o power_n of_o know_v what_o be_v true_a of_o desire_v what_o be_v good_a and_o of_o effect_v what_o they_o desire_v yet_o we_o can_v but_o acknowledge_v that_o these_o three_o faculty_n in_o all_o man_n who_o have_v their_o spirit_n clog_v with_o sinful_a flesh_n be_v very_o much_o weaken_v by_o sin_n and_o consequent_o must_v
to_o little_a purpose_n to_o labour_v his_o conversion_n for_o first_o he_o be_v ignorant_a in_o his_o understanding_n know_v nothing_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v oecum_fw-la for_o he_o who_o know_v not_o that_o which_o he_o ought_v to_o know_v be_v as_o if_o he_o know_v nothing_o nay_o he_o be_v much_o worse_o not_o only_o possess_v with_o ignorance_n but_o also_o with_o a_o kind_n of_o devil_n as_o say_v the_o same_o author_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o that_o will_v not_o know_v god_n can_v but_o know_v the_o devil_n he_o that_o will_v not_o receive_v christ_n and_o his_o wholesome_a word_n into_o his_o understanding_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v the_o devil_n and_o his_o poisonous_a dictate_v out_o of_o it_o second_o he_o be_v pertinacious_a in_o his_o will_n which_o appear_v from_o his_o contradiction_n from_o his_o obstinacy_n from_o his_o ambition_n his_o contradiction_n be_v discover_v in_o that_o he_o teach_v otherwise_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v oecumen_n he_o teach_v other_o thing_n than_o those_o which_o of_o right_o be_v to_o be_v teach_v we_o may_v say_v he_o first_o teach_v otherwise_o then_o the_o christian_a church_n oppose_v his_o novelty_n against_o her_o antiquity_n but_o at_o last_o he_o teach_v otherwise_o then_o himself_o oppose_v his_o own_o novelty_n with_o new_a and_o worse_a novelty_n his_o obstinacy_n appear_v in_o this_o he_o will_v remit_v nothing_o of_o his_o humour_n either_o for_o truth_n or_o peace_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d other_o may_v come_v near_o he_o but_o he_o will_v not_o come_v near_o they_o he_o will_v not_o approach_v or_o as_o we_o render_v it_o he_o will_v not_o consent_v to_o wholesome_a word_n for_o if_o he_o draw_v near_o to_o the_o truth_n with_o his_o lip_n yet_o his_o heart_n be_v far_o from_o it_o last_o his_o ambition_n and_o haughtiness_n of_o mind_n be_v see_v in_o that_o he_o be_v proud_a he_o scorn_v to_o be_v a_o follower_n of_o any_o but_o will_v be_v a_o leader_n of_o all_o and_o take_v more_o pleasure_n because_o more_o pride_n in_o be_v head_n of_o a_o faction_n then_o in_o be_v a_o inferior_a member_n of_o christ_n which_o show_v his_o blindness_n that_o he_o see_v not_o the_o blessing_n of_o those_o who_o be_v of_o christ_n communion_n as_o well_o as_o his_o perverseness_n that_o he_o will_v not_o join_v with_o those_o communicant_n and_o according_o the_o apostle_n here_o use_v a_o word_n that_o hint_v both_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v he_o be_v blind_v as_o it_o be_v with_o smoke_n for_o so_o ulpian_n upon_o demosthenes_n descant_v that_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d some_o derive_v it_o from_o darken_v the_o sight_n with_o smoke_n there_o be_v his_o blindness_n again_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v the_o same_o critic_n this_o word_n be_v derive_v from_o typhon_n one_o of_o the_o giant_n that_o be_v so_o mad_a with_o pride_n as_o to_o raise_v war_n against_o the_o god_n wherefore_o we_o say_v of_o a_o proud_a man_n that_o he_o be_v as_o that_o typhon_n there_o be_v his_o perverseness_n thus_o far_o a_o heathen_a critic_n may_v be_v allege_v to_o interpret_v this_o strange_a word_n here_o use_v by_o s._n paul_n but_o the_o christian_a divine_a who_o know_v that_o this_o war_a against_o god_n which_o be_v but_o a_o fable_n in_o the_o giant_n be_v a_o truth_n in_o the_o devil_n give_v we_o this_o gloss_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o kind_n of_o pride_n that_o first_o swell_v against_o the_o true_a church_n and_o at_o last_o against_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n be_v a_o very_a great_a friend_n and_o companion_n of_o the_o devil_n so_o that_o the_o proud_a heretic_n and_o the_o perverse_a schismatic_n for_o they_o can_v well_o be_v part_v though_o they_o be_v very_o ill_o join_v under_o a_o pretence_n of_o find_v a_o new_a way_n to_o heaven_n have_v bring_v himself_o direct_o to_o hell_n gate_n and_o be_v once_o there_o the_o devil_n will_v not_o easy_o suffer_v he_o to_o go_v from_o thence_o but_o he_o will_v forthwith_o teach_v he_o to_o spend_v all_o his_o time_n and_o zeal_n upon_o idle_a question_n fit_a for_o none_o but_o those_o that_o dote_v and_o upon_o quarrelsome_a disputation_n fit_a for_o nothing_o but_o to_o beget_v new_a dispute_n and_o endless_a contention_n for_o if_o you_o once_o turn_v questionist_n in_o stead_n of_o dogmatist_n seeker_n in_o stead_n of_o believer_n you_o must_v needs_o fall_v into_o logomachy_n strife_n of_o word_n as_o endless_a as_o needless_a therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sick_a about_o question_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v oecum_fw-la see_v here_o to_o be_v a_o seeker_n be_v indeed_o to_o be_v sick_a so_o to_o be_v sick_a in_o mind_n and_o that_o in_o tully_n language_n be_v to_o be_v mad_a nomen_fw-la insaniae_fw-la significat_fw-la mentis_fw-la aegrotationem_fw-la &_o morbum_fw-la cic._n 3._o tuscul._n for_o madness_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o sickness_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o we_o can_v deny_v this_o if_o we_o observe_v the_o course_n of_o such_o a_o man_n which_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o to_o spend_v time_n but_o to_o misspend_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d diogenes_n appellat_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o euclidis_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v laertius_n diogenes_n thecynick_n call_v plato_n school_a mere_a fool_a and_o say_v to_o be_v euclide_n scholar_n be_v to_o be_v in_o choler_n but_o s._n paul_n have_v find_v out_o a_o expression_n that_o in_o one_o word_n speak_v more_o than_o both_o these_o though_o with_o less_o acrimony_n and_o that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o second_o strange_a word_n here_o use_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o show_v here_o be_v set_v forth_o as_o strange_a a_o monster_n such_o device_n and_o trifle_n as_o be_v mere_a new_a nothing_o whereby_o man_n do_v only_o deceive_v themselves_o and_o seek_v to_o deceive_v other_o for_o so_o oecum_fw-la read_v and_o gloss_v the_o word_n out_o of_o s._n chrysostome_n invert_v the_o preposition_n and_o read_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o withal_o enlarge_n the_o sense_n for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o ill_a use_n of_o study_n and_o disputation_n not_o to_o confirm_v the_o judgement_n but_o to_o unsettle_v it_o not_o to_o discover_v the_o truth_n but_o to_o dissemble_v it_o which_o mischief_n may_v go_v no_o further_o than_o he_o alone_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o sin_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v this_o same_o mischief_n as_o it_o seek_v to_o corrupt_v and_o infect_v other_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v oecum_fw-la the_o infect_v other_o with_o this_o itch_n of_o vain_a dispute_v for_o as_o a_o scabby_a sheep_n rub_v against_o those_o that_o be_v sound_a of_o the_o same_o flock_n infect_v they_o with_o his_o touch_n so_o do_v these_o man_n that_o have_v itch_a ear_n ramble_a head_n and_o hollow_a heart_n infect_v other_o by_o their_o conversation_n say_v s._n chrysost._n and_o from_o he_o oecumenius_n all_o this_o consider_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o see_v the_o reason_n why_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o timothy_n from_o such_o withdraw_v thyself_o he_o command_v he_o as_o a_o bishop_n to_o rebuke_v some_o presbyter_n cap._n 5._o v._n 19_o 20._o which_o show_v his_o jurisdiction_n over_o they_o but_o break_v not_o his_o communion_n with_o they_o but_o he_o must_v have_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o do_v with_o these_o it_o be_v oecumenius_n his_o observation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o say_v not_o converse_v with_o such_o a_o man_n and_o oppose_v he_o converse_n with_o he_o according_a to_o your_o christian_a communion_n and_o oppose_v he_o according_a to_o your_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n but_o whole_o depart_v from_o he_o after_o one_o or_o two_o admonition_n which_o be_v suppose_v from_o cap._n 1._o v._n 3._o where_o timothy_n be_v command_v to_o charge_v they_o not_o to_o preach_v other_o doctrine_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n use_v here_o for_o you_o shall_v never_o make_v that_o man_n your_o convert_n who_o have_v make_v mammon_n his_o god_n and_o this_o indeed_o be_v the_o chief_a reason_n of_o the_o great_a distemper_n and_o great_a disturbance_n in_o christendom_n that_o many_o man_n be_v mammon_n rather_o than_o god_n chaplain_n and_o therefore_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o plead_v for_o baal_n that_o be_v for_o their_o own_o lord_v it_o over_o their_o brethren_n then_o for_o god_n more_o for_o belial_n that_o be_v for_o their_o own_o licentiousness_n then_o for_o christ_n hence_o it_o be_v we_o have_v fierce_a disputation_n against_o man_n then_o for_o god_n
tremble_a but_o as_o we_o have_v outpassed_n those_o ten_o leper_n in_o our_o uncleanness_n so_o we_o may_v not_o come_v short_a of_o they_o in_o their_o holy_a fear_n and_o faith_n for_o as_o their_o fear_n make_v they_o stand_v afar_o off_o so_o their_o faith_n make_v they_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n and_o say_v jesus_n master_n have_v mercy_n on_o we_o s._n luc._n 17._o 12_o 13._o than_o will_v he_o give_v we_o such_o a_o purity_n as_o will_v not_o only_o make_v we_o show_v our_o self_n to_o the_o priest_n but_o also_o to_o our_o god_n such_o a_o purity_n as_o will_v wash_v our_o eye_n to_o see_v he_o and_o much_o more_o our_o heart_n to_o love_v he_o for_o so_o say_v s._n peter_n act._n 15._o 9_o purisy_v their_o heart_n by_o faith_n not_o a_o faith_n which_o cost_v the_o purse_n no_o alm_n the_o body_n no_o fast_n the_o soul_n no_o pray_n for_o no_o true_a israelite_n will_v ever_o offer_v that_o unto_o the_o lord_n which_o cost_v he_o nothing_o 2_o sam._n 24._o 24._o but_o a_o faith_n which_o so_o purify_v the_o soul_n by_o know_v the_o truth_n as_o much_o more_o by_o obey_v it_o for_o so_o say_v the_o same_o apostle_n see_v you_o have_v purify_v your_o soul_n in_o obey_v the_o truth_n through_o the_o spirit_n unto_o unfeigned_a love_n of_o the_o brethren_n see_v that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o with_o a_o pure_a heart_n fervent_o 1_o s._n pet._n 1._o 22._o this_o be_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n it_o purify_v the_o soul_n not_o only_o by_o faith_n but_o also_o by_o obedience_n and_o by_o love_n which_o yet_o be_v now_o general_o far_a from_o many_o man_n who_o will_v fain_o be_v think_v to_o come_v near_a purity_n thus_o we_o have_v see_v god_n truth_n in_o his_o understanding_n his_o goodness_n in_o his_o will_n and_o his_o purity_n in_o his_o action_n &_o it_o still_o remain_v that_o we_o consider_v his_o liberty_n as_o belong_v to_o they_o all_o for_o liberty_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o dominion_n and_o power_n of_o action_n must_v needs_o be_v original_o in_o the_o understanding_n which_o alone_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v and_o deliberate_v of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v what_o not_o formal_o in_o the_o will_n which_o resolve_v to_o do_v or_o not_o to_o do_v but_o effectual_o it_o be_v only_a in_o the_o action_n which_o be_v the_o product_n of_o the_o say_v deliberate_a resolution_n this_o liberty_n be_v now_o brief_o to_o be_v handle_v first_o as_o it_o be_v in_o god_n and_o then_o as_o it_o be_v in_o religion_n for_o be_v the_o service_n of_o god_n god_n liberty_n be_v see_v in_o five_o respect_n in_o that_o he_o be_v free_a from_o sin_n free_a from_o misery_n free_a from_o obligation_n free_a from_o servitude_n and_o free_a from_o coaction_n which_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o he_o can_v both_o will_n and_o do_v what_o and_o when_o and_o where_o himself_o please_v i_o need_v not_o insist_v on_o the_o proof_n of_o these_o for_o to_o name_v they_o be_v to_o prove_v they_o nor_o can_v any_o man_n deny_v god_n liberty_n in_o any_o of_o these_o respect_n but_o he_o must_v deny_v he_o to_o be_v god_n and_o in_o all_o these_o same_o respect_n we_o may_v see_v and_o must_v acknowledge_v the_o liberty_n of_o religion_n and_o to_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v free_a in_o any_o of_o these_o be_v to_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v religion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o to_o make_v it_o to_o be_v state_n policy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o service_n of_o man_n first_o religion_n be_v free_a from_o sin_n for_o the_o superstition_n and_o faction_n and_o profaneness_n and_o other_o sin_n that_o be_v so_o rife_o among_o christian_n to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o reproach_n of_o christendom_n be_v a_o rust_n that_o cleave_v to_o the_o man_n who_o be_v little_o better_o than_o iron_n not_o to_o the_o religion_n which_o be_v as_o pure_a as_o the_o refiner_n fire_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o safe_a nor_o fit_a to_o say_v of_o any_o order_n or_o kind_n of_o christian_n that_o their_o religion_n be_v rebellion_n and_o their_o faith_n be_v faction_n though_o we_o can_v deny_v of_o too_o too_o many_o order_n and_o kind_n of_o man_n who_o profess_v religion_n that_o they_o be_v both_o rebellious_a and_o factious_a second_o religion_n be_v free_a from_o misery_n ask_v the_o three_o child_n in_o the_o fiery_a furnace_n they_o will_v say_v their_o religion_n have_v make_v they_o persecute_v they_o will_v not_o say_v that_o it_o have_v make_v they_o miserable_a they_o profess_v that_o they_o be_v deliver_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o lawless_a enemy_n most_o hateful_a apostate_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mean_v sure_o those_o of_o their_o own_o brethren_n which_o have_v renounce_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o their_o religion_n and_o help_v the_o babylonian_n to_o persecute_v and_o infest_v jerusalem_n and_o to_o a_o unjust_a king_n and_o the_o most_o wicked_a in_o all_o the_o world_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thus_o those_o bless_a martyr_n will_v tell_v you_o they_o be_v in_o persecution_n the_o great_a that_o ever_o be_v but_o they_o will_v not_o tell_v you_o they_o be_v in_o misery_n nay_o it_o seem_v they_o tell_v the_o quite_o contrary_a for_o none_o else_o can_v have_v tell_v it_o but_o from_o their_o mouth_n that_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v down_o into_o the_o oven_n and_o smite_v the_o flame_n of_o fire_n and_o make_v the_o midst_n of_o the_o furnace_n as_o it_o have_v be_v a_o moist_a whistle_a wind_n but_o you_o will_v say_v these_o man_n be_v partial_a witness_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n therefore_o ask_v their_o persecutor_n they_o will_v tell_v you_o the_o same_o for_o the_o prince_n governor_n and_o captain_n and_o the_o king_n counselor_n be_v gather_v together_o see_v these_o man_n upon_o who_o body_n the_o fire_n have_v no_o power_n nor_o be_v a_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n singe_v neither_o be_v their_o coat_n change_v nor_o the_o smell_n of_o fire_n have_v pass_v on_o they_o nay_o ask_v nabuchadnezzar_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o persecution_n and_o he_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o though_o he_o have_v cause_v these_o holy_a man_n to_o be_v so_o much_o afflict_v yet_o he_o can_v not_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v miserable_a for_o at_o that_o instant_n when_o he_o have_v think_v they_o have_v be_v burn_v to_o ash_n he_o hear_v they_o sing_v in_o the_o flame_n as_o say_v the_o greek_a translation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o probable_o make_v he_o look_v about_o to_o see_v whence_o that_o melody_n proceed_v and_o find_v so_o sweet_a a_o breath_n to_o come_v from_o the_o blast_n of_o his_o fire_n he_o be_v astonish_v and_o rise_v up_o in_o haste_n and_o go_v to_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o furnace_n which_o before_o bid_v he_o keep_v his_o distance_n in_o that_o it_o consume_v his_o officer_n and_o call_v forth_o the_o holy_a and_o bless_a martyr_n who_o have_v be_v deliver_v from_o a_o present_a death_n can_v not_o be_v look_v on_o but_o as_o man_n new_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a three_o religion_n be_v free_a from_o obligation_n there_o be_v no_o great_a humane_a obligation_n then_o that_o of_o nature_n and_o there_o be_v no_o great_a natural_a obligation_n then_o that_o which_o we_o owe_v to_o our_o parent_n yet_o that_o may_v not_o be_v allege_v to_o keep_v we_o from_o serve_v god_n so_o aquinas_n determine_v the_o case_n si_fw-mi ergo_fw-la cultus_fw-la parentum_fw-la abstrahat_fw-la nos_fw-la a_o cultu_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la jam_fw-la esset_fw-la pietatis_fw-la parentum_fw-la insistere_fw-la cultui_fw-la contra_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o ideo_fw-la in_o tali_fw-la casu_fw-la dimittinda_fw-la sunt_fw-la officia_fw-la pietatis_fw-la in_o parent_n propter_fw-la divinum_fw-la religionis_fw-la cultum_fw-la 22_o ae_z qu._n 101._o art_n 4._o if_o our_o duty_n to_o our_o parent_n take_v we_o away_o from_o our_o duty_n to_o our_o god_n as_o if_o the_o father_n shall_v command_v his_o son_n to_o turn_v rebel_n or_o idolater_n or_o the_o like_a we_o must_v forsake_v our_o parent_n and_o cleave_v to_o god_n and_o show_v the_o prevalency_n of_o that_o duty_n we_o owe_v to_o god_n by_o be_v undutiful_a to_o our_o parent_n in_o such_o a_o case_n again_o there_o be_v no_o civil_a obligation_n great_a than_o that_o we_o owe_v to_o our_o governor_n yet_o if_o they_o command_v we_o to_o sin_n against_o god_n by_o not_o speak_v nor_o teach_v by_o not_o pray_v nor_o preach_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n we_o have_v our_o answer_n put_v into_o our_o mouth_n and_o god_n put_v it_o into_o our_o heart_n lest_o atheism_n get_v possession_n there_o in_o stead_n of_o christ_n whether_o it_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n to_o hearken_v
quia_fw-la nondum_fw-la expertus_fw-la eram_fw-la vel_fw-la quantum_fw-la mali_fw-la eorum_fw-la auderet_fw-la impunitas_fw-la vel_fw-la quantum_fw-la eye_v in_o melius_fw-la mutandis_fw-la confer_v possit_fw-la diligentia_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la and_o indeed_o this_o course_n then_o please_v i_o not_o because_o i_o have_v not_o yet_o see_v the_o experiment_n either_o how_o much_o mischief_n their_o uncurbed_a licentiousness_n will_v produce_v or_o how_o much_o the_o diligence_n of_o a_o severe_a discipline_n will_v conduce_v to_o their_o amendment_n so_o st_n augustine_n and_o yet_o all_o this_o while_n the_o coaction_n or_o compulsion_n do_v in_o truth_n reach_v no_o far_o then_o to_o conformity_n and_o order_n it_o reach_v not_o to_o religion_n which_o can_v no_o more_o be_v drive_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o hypocrite_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o lawful_a magistrate_n than_o it_o can_v be_v drive_v out_o of_o the_o heart_n of_o true_a believer_n by_o the_o outrageous_a persecution_n of_o tyrant_n and_o atheist_n so_o that_o we_o must_v conclude_v that_o though_o none_o be_v more_o expose_v to_o violence_n then_o religious_a and_o godly_a man_n for_o he_o that_o will_v needs_o make_v his_o belove_a son_n perfect_a with_o suffering_n will_v not_o make_v his_o unworthy_a servant_n perfect_a without_o they_o yet_o religion_n itself_o be_v whole_o exempt_v from_o all_o violence_n be_v the_o queen_n regent_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o give_v command_n both_o to_o angel_n and_o man_n but_o to_o receive_v command_n of_o neither_o chap._n vii_o the_o assurance_n we_o have_v of_o religion_n for_o that_o it_o resemble_v god_n in_o his_o attribute_n of_o justice_n grace_n and_o mercy_n in_o the_o last_o place_n we_o come_v to_o the_o attribute_n of_o god_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v external_a perfection_n belong_v to_o he_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o creature_n though_o not_o to_o be_v true_o and_o full_o know_v from_o our_o creation_n but_o from_o our_o redemption_n for_o no_o one_o attribute_n of_o god_n be_v right_o understand_v by_o those_o who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n not_o his_o justice_n for_o they_o know_v not_o god_n in_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v of_o pure_a eye_n then_o to_o look_v on_o iniquity_n not_o his_o mercy_n for_o they_o know_v not_o god_n in_o his_o son_n in_o who_o alone_o he_o show_v mercy_n not_o his_o wisdom_n for_o they_o know_v not_o god_n in_o his_o word_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o true_a wisdom_n not_o his_o truth_n for_o they_o know_v not_o god_n in_o his_o promise_n and_o can_v say_v he_o be_v faithful_a that_o promise_v heb._n 10._o 23._o and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n they_o that_o be_v not_o of_o god_n church_n can_v know_v his_o attribute_n because_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v know_v from_o our_o creation_n but_o from_o our_o redemption_n and_o they_o that_o be_v most_o true_o of_o god_n church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v non_fw-la numerò_fw-la sed_fw-la meritò_fw-la as_o aquinas_n have_v distinguish_v not_o only_o by_o outward_a profession_n but_o also_o by_o inward_a affection_n do_v most_o true_o understand_v god_n attribute_n they_o clear_o see_v the_o severity_n of_o his_o justice_n require_v a_o full_a satisfaction_n for_o sin_n they_o clear_o see_v the_o goodness_n of_o his_o mercy_n accept_v of_o satisfaction_n from_o his_o son_n when_o he_o can_v not_o have_v it_o from_o his_o servant_n they_o clear_o see_v that_o vast_a wisdom_n which_o find_v out_o this_o way_n to_o save_v man_n when_o he_o be_v lose_v and_o they_o clear_o see_v that_o unchangeable_a truth_n which_o both_o call_v and_o bring_v he_o to_o salvation_n but_o i_o will_v follow_v my_o former_a method_n and_o insist_v only_o on_o the_o chief_a attribute_n to_o which_o the_o rest_n have_v relation_n and_o may_v therefore_o have_v reduction_n and_o these_o attribute_n be_v three_o justice_z grace_n and_o mercy_n justice_n whereby_o he_o render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n grace_n whereby_o he_o free_o give_v what_o be_v want_v to_o we_o and_o mercy_n whereby_o he_o free_o forgive_v what_o be_v due_a unto_o himself_o these_o i_o say_v belong_v to_o god_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o creature_n for_o though_o his_o justice_n flow_v from_o his_o truth_n yet_o he_o can_v not_o show_v that_o justice_n either_o in_o punish_v or_o in_o reward_v be_v there_o not_o a_o creature_n to_o be_v punish_v or_o reward_v so_o likewise_o his_o grace_n in_o give_v and_o mercy_n in_o forgive_a though_o they_o flow_v from_o his_o goodness_n and_o his_o liberty_n which_o they_o deny_v who_o will_v not_o let_v he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n yet_o he_o can_v neither_o show_v his_o grace_n in_o give_v nor_o his_o mercy_n in_o forgive_a be_v there_o not_o a_o indigent_a creature_n to_o want_v his_o give_v and_o a_o sinful_a creature_n to_o want_v his_o forgive_n the_o first_o of_o these_o attribute_n be_v justice_n which_o we_o must_v first_o contemplate_v in_o god_n and_o then_o in_o religion_n as_o it_o be_v his_o service_n god_n be_v just_a by_o universal_a and_o by_o particular_a justice_n first_o by_o universal_a justice_n and_o that_o in_o two_o respect_n both_o in_o regard_n of_o himself_o as_o willing_a and_o do_v all_o manner_n of_o right_n shall_v not_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n do_v right_a gen._n 18._o 25._o and_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o we_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o all_o justice_n in_o man_n you_o judge_v not_o for_o man_n but_o for_o the_o lord_n who_o be_v with_o you_o in_o the_o judgement_n 2_o chron._n 19_o 6._o second_o god_n be_v just_a by_o particular_a justice_n retribute_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n rom._n 2._o 6._o who_o shall_v render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n and_o v_o 5._o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o day_n of_o god_n righteous_a judgement_n because_o it_o be_v all_o one_o in_o he_o to_o judge_v and_o to_o judge_v righteous_o thus_o do_v s._n chrysostome_n qualify_v the_o mistake_n or_o rather_o rectify_v the_o abuse_n which_o be_v in_o some_o inconsiderate_a man_n from_o god_n decree_n of_o election_n thou_o say_v that_o god_n have_v predestinate_v and_o i_o say_v that_o god_n be_v a_o righteous_a judge_n and_o will_v reward_v thou_o according_a to_o thy_o deserve_n but_o it_o be_v object_v against_o god_n universal_a justice_n that_o he_o command_v some_o thing_n contrary_a to_o his_o own_o law_n as_o abraham_n to_o slay_v isaac_n and_o the_o israelite_n to_o spoil_v the_o egyptian_n the_o one_o against_o the_o six_o the_o other_o against_o the_o eight_o commandment_n it_o be_v answer_v by_o some_o divine_n generali_fw-la derogans_fw-la speciali_fw-la voluntate_fw-la that_o god_n do_v in_o these_o case_n derogate_v from_o his_o general_a will_n by_o his_o special_a will_n but_o we_o may_v not_o easy_o approve_v this_o answer_n because_o god_n will_n can_v clash_v with_o itself_o and_o therefore_o he_o may_v not_o be_v say_v to_o command_v that_o by_o his_o special_a which_o he_o forbid_v by_o his_o general_a will_n and_o consequent_o god_n in_o command_a abraham_n to_o kill_v his_o son_n do_v not_o make_v murder_n lawful_a but_o make_v that_o kill_v no_o murder_n by_o pass_v upon_o isaac_n the_o sentence_n of_o death_n and_o command_v the_o israelite_n to_o spoil_v the_o egyptian_n do_v not_o make_v it_o lawful_a to_o rob_v and_o steal_v but_o make_v that_o spoil_v no_o robbery_n since_o he_o who_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o have_v translate_v the_o right_a of_o property_n and_o this_o be_v most_o acute_o dicuss_v by_o the_o master_n of_o subtlety_n scotus_n in_o lib._n 1._o send_v do_v 44._o quando_fw-la in_o potestate_fw-la agentis_fw-la est_fw-la lex_fw-la &_o rectitudo_fw-la legis_fw-la potest_fw-la tale_n agens_fw-la ordinatè_fw-la &_o rectè_fw-la agere_fw-la aliter_fw-la quam_fw-la lex_fw-la illa_fw-la dictat_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la subest_fw-la illi_fw-la legi_fw-la &_o sic_fw-la ejus_fw-la potentia_fw-la absoluta_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la inordinata_fw-la when_o the_o law_n and_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o law_n be_v both_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o agent_n we_o need_v not_o then_o fear_v any_o obliquity_n in_o the_o action_n whether_o he_o act_n by_o his_o ordinary_n or_o by_o his_o absolute_a power_n for_o if_o by_o his_o ordinary_a power_n he_o act_v not_o according_a to_o the_o law_n by_o his_o absolute_a power_n he_o can_v make_v the_o law_n to_o be_v in_o that_o case_n no_o law_n and_o where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n there_o be_v no_o transgression_n this_o rule_n be_v allow_v which_o can_v be_v deny_v we_o shall_v little_o need_v to_o patronize_v god_n justice_n in_o command_a abraham_n to_o kill_v his_o son_n who_o be_v guilty_a of_o death_n nor_o yet_o in_o deliver_v over_o his_o own_o son_n to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n who_o know_v
of_o the_o soul_n affection_n yet_o not_o so_o quick_a as_o at_o any_o time_n to_o go_v without_o its_o errand_n second_o it_o be_v to_o honour_v they_o and_o that_o not_o cursory_o or_o mere_o for_o fashion_n sake_n but_o with_o the_o engagement_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o know_v they_o distinct_o and_o to_o perform_v they_o diligent_o there_o be_v a_o outward_a honour_n in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o eye-service_n or_o the_o service_n of_o the_o man_n but_o there_o be_v moreover_o a_o inward_a honour_n in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o soul-service_n or_o the_o service_n of_o the_o mind_n the_o first_o be_v in_o all_o manner_n of_o serve_v and_o the_o second_o be_v peculiarly_a in_o observe_v three_o and_o last_o it_o be_v to_o obey_v they_o for_o observation_n be_v vain_a where_o it_o be_v not_o active_a and_o idle_a where_o it_o be_v ineffectual_a which_o make_v our_o saviour_n join_v observe_v and_o do_v both_o together_o s._n mat._n 23._o 3._o that_o observe_v and_o do_v and_o consequent_o the_o preacher_n here_o bid_v we_o so_o observe_v the_o king_n command_v as_o to_o be_v sure_a not_o to_o leave_v they_o undo_v for_o then_o our_o observation_n will_v but_o make_v we_o guilty_a of_o the_o great_a contempt_n the_o wise_a historian_n set_v those_o down_o for_o little_a better_o than_o a_o mutinous_a rabble_n of_o who_o he_o say_v interpretari_fw-la magìs_fw-la quam_fw-la exequi_fw-la they_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o interpret_v then_o to_o execute_v all_o command_n true_o to_o observe_v a_o command_n be_v to_o love_v honour_n and_o obey_v it_o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o also_o with_o the_o great_a patience_n as_o it_o be_v serve_v with_o the_o great_a diligence_n as_o it_o be_v observe_v with_o the_o great_a patience_n as_o it_o be_v serve_v for_o what_o more_o tedious_a then_o whole_o to_o attend_v upon_o another_o will_n and_o pleasure_n yet_o this_o you_o must_v do_v if_o you_o be_v bind_v to_o serve_v for_o that_o be_v to_o wait_v and_o with_o the_o great_a diligence_n as_o it_o be_v observe_v for_o wherein_o can_v you_o be_v negligent_a if_o you_o may_v not_o once_o close_o much_o less_o turn_v away_o your_o eye_n yet_o this_o you_o may_v not_o do_v if_o you_o must_v observe_v for_o that_o be_v to_o watch_v as_o then_o this_o word_n intimate_v wait_v it_o require_v all_o possible_a patience_n and_o as_o it_o intimate_v watch_v it_o require_v all_o possible_a diligence_n and_o yet_o neither_o patience_n nor_o diligence_n can_v be_v so_o great_a as_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o they_o both_o in_o the_o next_o word_n and_o that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o god_n where_o aben-ezra's_a gloss_n be_v most_o admirable_a a_o jew_n write_v to_o the_o admiration_n yet_o much_o more_o as_o the_o case_n now_o stand_v with_o we_o to_o the_o shame_n of_o christian_n the_o preacher_n say_v he_o use_v two_o such_o argument_n as_o be_v both_o unresistable_a the_o one_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o king_n mouth_n the_o other_o be_v the_o word_n of_o thy_o own_o mouth_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o what_o have_v proceed_v from_o the_o king_n mouth_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o what_o have_v proceed_v from_o thy_o own_o mouth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o he_o have_v command_v and_o because_o thou_o have_v covenant_v so_o to_o do_v sc_n to_o be_v true_a and_o faithful_a to_o thy_o king_n and_o the_o same_o doctor_n go_v on_o as_o admirable_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o a_o king_n among_o man_n will_v not_o acquit_v he_o that_o reject_v his_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o much_o less_o will_v the_o king_n of_o truth_n the_o king_n of_o king_n hold_v he_o guiltless_a that_o take_v his_o name_n in_o vain_a here_o be_v a_o probable_a conjecture_n that_o among_o the_o jew_n there_o be_v some_o kind_n of_o oath_n make_v unto_o their_o king_n not_o unlike_a to_o our_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o a_o league_n or_o covenant_n that_o king_n david_n make_v with_o the_o elder_n of_o israel_n in_o hebron_n before_o the_o lord_n when_o they_o come_v to_o anoint_v he_o king_n 2_o sam._n 5._o 3._o which_o covenant_n be_v reciprocal_a without_o question_n that_o david_n shall_v not_o molest_v they_o for_o make_v ishbosheth_n king_n for_o two_o year_n and_o after_o saul_n death_n yet_o stay_v five_o year_n long_o before_o they_o come_v to_o anoint_v david_n king_n over_o they_o say_v kimchi_n and_o consequent_o that_o they_o shall_v play_v no_o more_o such_o prank_n with_o he_o be_v no_o more_o false_a to_z nor_o averse_a from_o his_o sovereignty_n though_o mention_n be_v make_v only_o of_o david_n in_o the_o covenant_n as_o of_o the_o chief_a party_n yet_o the_o elder_n do_v swear_v too_o by_o kimchi_n own_o confession_n though_o he_o record_v not_o the_o word_n of_o their_o part_n of_o the_o oath_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v strange_a if_o a_o nation_n instruct_v in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n shall_v against_o that_o law_n be_v forward_o to_o bind_v itself_o under_o a_o oath_n not_o to_o do_v good_a to_o such_o or_o such_o a_o man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v philo_n of_o his_o own_o countryman_n and_o not_o be_v much_o more_o forward_o to_o swear_v homage_n and_o allegiance_n to_o their_o king_n which_o that_o law_n do_v oblige_v they_o to_o but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o that_o the_o jew_n do_v think_v themselves_o bind_v without_o any_o peculiar_a oath_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o general_a covenant_n with_o god_n to_o be_v true_a and_o faithful_a to_o their_o king_n for_o that_o the_o five_o commandment_n be_v one_o of_o those_o ten_o to_o which_o they_o have_v vow_v their_o obedience_n nay_o it_o be_v indeed_o the_o first_o commandment_n of_o promise_n and_o they_o look_v by_o their_o obedience_n to_o inherit_v the_o promisedland_n and_o if_o that_o nation_n do_v think_v so_o religious_o of_o the_o obligation_n of_o a_o oath_n or_o vow_n as_o to_o pretend_v that_o for_o a_o actual_a break_n of_o a_o commandment_n as_o it_o be_v answer_n enough_o for_o they_o why_o they_o do_v not_o relieve_v their_o father_n or_o mother_n to_o say_v they_o have_v swear_v by_o corban_n by_o the_o gift_n on_o the_o altar_n not_o to_o do_v it_o mat._n 15._o 5._o what_o will_v become_v of_o we_o who_o have_v swear_v to_o the_o keep_n of_o this_o commandment_n to_o the_o honour_v of_o our_o father_n and_o rather_o than_o keep_v the_o commandment_n will_v break_v our_o oath_n jew_n pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n that_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n shall_v rise_v up_o in_o judgement_n against_o this_o generation_n and_o shall_v condemn_v it_o for_o they_o make_v the_o keep_n of_o a_o oath_n their_o pretence_n for_o break_v the_o five_o commandment_n but_o we_o have_v nothing_o save_v the_o break_n of_o a_o oath_n or_o rather_o of_o many_o oath_n to_o allege_v for_o ourselves_o in_o that_o we_o have_v so_o shameful_o break_v it_o and_o can_v only_o say_v we_o have_v make_v ourselves_o guilty_a of_o perjury_n that_o we_o may_v be_v guilty_a of_o rebellion_n what_o have_v we_o not_o as_o great_a hope_n as_o have_v the_o jew_n have_v we_o not_o as_o great_a promise_n as_o they_o have_v why_o then_o shall_v we_o have_v a_o less_o obedience_n to_o be_v undutiful_a be_v not_o the_o way_n to_o obtain_v our_o inheritance_n in_o earth_n much_o less_o in_o heaven_n especial_o since_o god_n look_v upon_o this_o grand_a undutifulness_n to_o king_n as_o if_o it_o be_v unto_o himself_o and_o we_o may_v challenge_v all_o christendom_n to_o show_v we_o any_o nation_n or_o people_n that_o be_v not_o full_o as_o defective_a in_o conscience_n as_o it_o be_v in_o allegiance_n janne_n and_o jambres_n that_o first_o withstand_v moses_n god_n immediate_a vicegerent_n though_o not_o to_o they_o and_o then_o resist_v the_o truth_n have_v leave_v this_o unhappy_a legacy_n to_o all_o their_o follower_n that_o as_o they_o be_v man_n of_o corrupt_a mind_n for_o want_v of_o obedience_n so_o they_o be_v reprobate_a concern_v the_o faith_n for_o want_v of_o a_o good_a conscience_n god_n will_v not_o so_o far_o countenance_n rebellion_n as_o to_o let_v the_o true_a religion_n long_o continue_v and_o much_o less_o thrive_v under_o it_o and_o it_o be_v the_o general_a observation_n of_o all_o sound_a divine_n that_o the_o scripture_n do_v most_o common_o join_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n with_o obedience_n to_o king_n as_o 1_o pet_n 2._o 17._o fear_v god_n honour_v the_o king_n not_o suppose_v the_o one_o possible_a without_o the_o other_o and_o to_o show_v it_o be_v not_o they_o be_v both_o join_v together_o in_o one_o act_n of_o fear_n prov._n 24._o 21._o my_o son_n fear_v god_n and_o the_o king_n and_o meddle_v not_o with_o they_o
the_o true_a catholic_n tenure_n or_o a_o good_a christian_n certainty_n which_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v of_o his_o religion_n and_o may_v have_v of_o his_o salvation_n by_o edward_n hyde_n d._n d._n sometime_o fellow_n of_o trinity_n college_n in_o cambridge_n and_o late_a rector_n resident_n of_o brightwell_n in_o berks._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d naz._n ephes._n 5._o 1._o be_v you_o follower_n of_o i_o as_o i_o be_o of_o christ._n cambridge_z print_v by_o john_n field_n printer_n to_o the_o university_n 1662._o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a edward_z earl_n of_o clarendon_n viscount_n cornbury_n baron_n of_o hindon_n lord_n high_a chancellor_n of_o england_n and_o chancellor_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n my_o lord_n you_o will_v pardon_v the_o boldness_n of_o this_o dedication_n from_o one_o who_o be_v unknown_a to_o your_o lordship_n when_o you_o have_v consider_v the_o consanguinity_n or_o near_a relation_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o ensue_a work_n to_o your_o most_o noble_a person_n if_o we_o add_v to_o this_o a_o forcible_a tie_n or_o obligation_n of_o love_n his_o autonomy_n his_o bear_v the_o same_o name_n with_o your_o lordship_n both_o as_o man_n and_o christian_n likewise_o his_o assimilation_n or_o likeness_n to_o your_o honour_n in_o the_o high_a accomplishment_n of_o nature_n and_o grace_n he_o be_v for_o his_o steadie_a loyalty_n to_o his_o king_n his_o fidelity_n to_o the_o church_n and_o stupendous_a science_n in_o all_o kind_n of_o learning_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o i_o may_v say_v of_o he_o what_o s._n chrysostome_n say_v of_o another_o a_o prodigy_n among_o man_n admire_v by_o the_o most_o and_o belove_v of_o all_o good_a christian_n weigh_v all_o these_o particular_n in_o the_o balance_n of_o my_o private_a thought_n i_o from_o they_o draw_v this_o conclusive_a persuasion_n that_o if_o my_o decease_a dear_a friend_n be_v now_o live_v and_o to_o put_v the_o ensue_a treatise_n the_o child_n of_o his_o brain_n out_o to_o nurse_n he_o will_v have_v venture_v upon_o your_o lordship_n patronage_n who_o may_v style_v this_o learned_a work_n your_o own_o and_o it_o just_o own_v you_o for_o its_o parent_n as_o be_v the_o copy_n of_o your_o soul_n and_o picture_n of_o your_o life_n what_o be_v delineate_v and_o set_v down_o in_o it_o by_o way_n of_o doctrine_n or_o precept_n your_o lordship_n have_v draw_v out_o in_o the_o line_n of_o your_o life_n by_o practice_n for_o it_o contain_v a_o lively_a portraiture_n of_o a_o good_a christian_a and_o loyal_a subject_n a_o separatist_n may_v deceive_v himself_o by_o divide_v these_o two_o and_o flatter_v his_o delude_a soul_n with_o a_o persuasion_n that_o though_o he_o bear_v not_o in_o his_o heart_n a_o respectful_a love_n to_o his_o sovereign_n he_o may_v scale_v heaven_n upon_o the_o ladder_n of_o a_o bare_a title_n or_o with_o the_o outward_a badge_n of_o a_o empty_a name_n in_o that_o he_o be_v call_v christian_a and_o challenge_v christ_n as_o his_o with_o his_o dare_a tongue_n let_v such_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d self-deceiver_n peruse_v without_o partiality_n or_o prejudice_n the_o follow_a treatise_n and_o they_o will_v learn_v a_o better_a lesson_n it_o will_v inform_v they_o of_o this_o truth_n that_o loyalty_n and_o christianity_n like_o that_o eros_n and_o anteros_n in_o the_o fable_n be_v so_o twist_v and_o link_v together_o that_o as_o one_o can_v live_v or_o be_v without_o the_o other_o so_o he_o that_o be_v false_a to_o his_o king_n can_v be_v true_a to_o christ_n our_o saviour_n who_o in_o his_o word_n enjoin_v we_o to_o be_v good_a subject_n in_o obey_v our_o king_n just_a command_n who_o god_n have_v set_v over_o we_o as_o he_o require_v of_o we_o to_o act_v the_o part_n of_o good_a christian_n which_o be_v to_o imitate_v he_o in_o humility_n and_o charity_n in_o sobriety_n and_o meekness_n in_o piety_n and_o patience_n in_o love_n and_o obedience_n in_o brotherly_a kindness_n to_o all_o even_o to_o those_o that_o be_v under_o we_o that_o this_o holy_a frame_n of_o spirit_n may_v be_v wrought_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o his_o majesty_n subject_n as_o it_o be_v in_o your_o lordship_n it_o be_v and_o ever_o shall_v be_v the_o hearty_a prayer_n of_o your_o lordship_n most_o humble_a servant_n r._n boreman_n to_o the_o christian_a reader_n great_a be_v the_o impiety_n yet_o great_a if_o possible_a be_v the_o inconstancy_n of_o this_o our_o age_n god_n just_o deliver_v we_o over_o to_o inconstancy_n because_o we_o have_v deliver_v ourselves_o over_o to_o impiety_n the_o whole_a book_n of_o god_n tell_v we_o but_o of_o one_o ahab_n that_o sell_v himself_o to_o work_v wickedness_n but_o our_o own_o sad_a experience_n if_o not_o our_o guilty_a conscience_n must_v needs_o tell_v we_o of_o many_o thousand_o that_o be_v now_o ride_v post_n to_o that_o market_n they_o choose_v new_a god_n than_o be_v war_n in_o the_o gate_n judg._n 5._o 8._o express_v the_o least_o part_n of_o our_o present_a sin_n and_o future_a punishment_n for_o we_o be_v daily_o choose_v new_a god_n to_o increase_v our_o sin_n and_o there_o be_v daily_o new_a war_n rage_v among_o we_o nay_o within_o we_o to_o increase_v our_o punishment_n war_n not_o only_o in_o our_o gate_n to_o waste_v our_o estate_n but_o also_o in_o our_o heart_n to_o waste_v our_o conscience_n we_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n forsake_v our_o god_n and_o now_o we_o be_v labour_v to_o forsake_v ourselves_o we_o will_v not_o when_o we_o may_v follow_v the_o dictate_v of_o religion_n and_o now_o we_o can_v if_o we_o will_v follow_v the_o dictate_v of_o reason_n or_o the_o direction_n of_o common_a sense_n we_o be_v at_o first_o perverse_a and_o will_v not_o know_v god_n mind_n we_o be_v now_o become_v stupid_a and_o do_v not_o know_v our_o own_o of_o this_o fancy_n to_o day_n of_o another_o to_o morrow_n and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o job_n messenger_n the_o last_o be_v the_o worst_a or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o outrageous_a billow_n of_o the_o tempestuous_a wave_n the_o first_o do_v toss_v and_o shake_v but_o the_o last_o do_v drown_v and_o sink_v we_o and_o all_o be_v from_o fancy_n in_o stead_n of_o certainty_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n i_o say_v from_o fancy_n for_o the_o humour_n that_o be_v now_o most_o predominant_a settle_v not_o deep_a enough_o to_o be_v call_v persuasion_n stay_v not_o long_a enough_o to_o be_v call_v a_o resolution_n good_a lord_n be_v this_o to_o be_v reform_v christian_n not_o to_o be_v firm_a not_o to_o be_v real_a christian_n for_o they_o alone_o be_v the_o real_a christian_n all_o other_o be_v mere_o fantastical_a who_o sanctify_v the_o lord_n god_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o be_v ready_a always_o to_o give_v a_o answer_n to_o every_o man_n that_o ask_v they_o a_o reason_n of_o the_o hope_n that_o be_v in_o they_o with_o meekness_n and_o fear_n 1_o s._n pet._n 3._o 15._o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n in_o all_o this_o text_n but_o drive_v at_o the_o certainty_n of_o religion_n 1._o it_o must_v be_v fix_v in_o the_o heart_n not_o slaunt_v in_o the_o head_n 2._o it_o must_v sanctify_v the_o lord_n god_n who_o as_o lord_n change_v not_o and_o as_o god_n love_v not_o those_o who_o be_v give_v to_o change_v especial_o for_o the_o worse_o 3_o it_o must_v put_v we_o in_o a_o readiness_n to_o give_v a_o answer_n to_o every_o man_n that_o shall_v ask_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o hope_n that_o be_v in_o we_o which_o can_v be_v effect_v without_o great_a judgement_n and_o deliberation_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o great_a constancy_n and_o resolution_n in_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o for_o we_o must_v not_o only_o answer_v every_o man_n that_o shall_v ask_v we_o but_o also_o answer_v by_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o our_o hope_n that_o be_v we_o must_v answer_v by_o convince_a he_o that_o ask_v we_o if_o he_o gainsay_v our_o hope_n or_o at_o least_o by_o confirm_v ourselves_o against_o all_o his_o gainsaying_n for_o in_o vain_a do_v we_o talk_v of_o a_o hope_n of_o salvation_n that_o be_v in_o we_o from_o the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o our_o religion_n if_o our_o religion_n be_v so_o unsettled_a as_o to_o be_v shake_v by_o the_o storm_n of_o a_o persecution_n or_o so_o uncertain_a as_o to_o be_v blow_v away_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o a_o argument_n the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n which_o we_o have_v or_o may_v have_v from_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v a_o hope_n so_o fix_v as_o to_o make_v we_o withstand_v persecutor_n much_o more_o to_o withstand_v sophister_n for_o though_o it_o fill_v we_o with_o meekness_n in_o regard_n of_o our_o own_o infirmity_n and_o with_o fear_n in_o regard_n of_o our_o own_o impiety_n yet_o it_o fill_v we_o with_o
foundation_n because_o they_o join_v the_o soul_n to_o he_o which_o can_v be_v proper_o say_v of_o any_o man_n whatsoever_o nor_o of_o all_o the_o congregation_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n not_o of_o s._n peter_n himself_o and_o much_o less_o of_o his_o successor_n and_o if_o it_o be_v say_v can_v be_v justify_v by_o any_o good_a logic_n or_o good_a divinity_n much_o less_o by_o that_o distinction_n of_o fundamentum_fw-la primarium_fw-la and_o secundarium_fw-la of_o a_o primary_n and_o a_o secondary_a foundation_n which_o distinguish_v a_o numerical_a identity_n from_o itself_o with_o too_o much_o subtlety_n and_o too_o little_a truth_n call_v that_o a_o secondary_a foundation_n which_o be_v indeed_o a_o piece_n of_o the_o build_n and_o therefore_o they_o that_o teach_v post_n christum_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la est_fw-la petrus_n &_o nisi_fw-la per_fw-la petrum_fw-la non_fw-la pervenitur_fw-la ad_fw-la christum_fw-la bellarm._n in_o praefat_fw-la in_o libros_fw-la de_fw-la summo_fw-la pontifice_fw-la do_v mistake_v a_o pillar_n for_o the_o foundation_n to_o be_v a_o pillar_n in_o god_n house_n be_v a_o more_o glorious_a title_n than_o be_v give_v to_o any_o angel_n and_o carry_v with_o it_o a_o burden_n too_o heavy_a for_o any_o man_n who_o have_v not_o the_o extraordinary_a assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n think_v it_o enough_o to_o call_v s._n peter_n a_o pillar_n leave_v it_o for_o christ_n alone_o to_o be_v the_o foundation_n james_n cephas_n that_o be_v peter_n and_o john_n who_o seem_v to_o be_v pillar_n gal._n 2._o 9_o cephas_n be_v a_o pillar_n and_o james_n and_o john_n be_v no_o less_o pillar_n than_o cephas_n or_o peter_n and_o consequent_o their_o successor_n no_o less_o pillar_n than_o his_o successor_n but_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v a_o foundation_n proper_o so_o call_v vide_fw-la field_n pag._n 478_o 479._o that_o be_v too_o high_a a_o attribute_n for_o any_o man_n since_o he_o can_v work_v upon_o the_o soul_n by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o virtue_n to_o unite_v that_o immediate_o unto_o christ_n for_o he_o be_v the_o only_a foundation_n that_o sustain_v the_o whole_a build_n and_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v call_v foundation_n by_o s._n paul_n only_o as_o settle_v and_o establish_v we_o in_o christ_n which_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o any_o man_n or_o angel_n to_o do_v who_o can_v work_v only_o instrumental_o towards_o these_o by_o instruct_v the_o understanding_n and_o exciting_a the_o will_n but_o can_v do_v the_o work_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o can_v so_o much_o as_o reductive_o or_o instrumental_o be_v call_v foundation_n and_o this_o be_v agreeable_a with_o bonaventure_n distinction_n in_o lib._n 4._o scent_n do_v 22._o qu._n 1._o fundamentum_fw-la dicitur_fw-la dupliciter_fw-la uno_fw-la modo_fw-la locus_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la aedificium_fw-la stabilitur_fw-la alio_fw-la modo_fw-la dicitur_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la illud_fw-la secundùm_fw-la quod_fw-la res_fw-la locatur_fw-la in_o svo_fw-la sustentaculo_fw-la a_o thing_n may_v be_v call_v a_o foundation_n in_o two_o respect_n either_o that_o itself_o sustain_v the_o building_n &_o so_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a foundation_n or_o that_o it_o cause_v we_o to_o be_v sustain_v by_o the_o foundation_n and_o that_o be_v do_v three_o way_n either_o by_o remove_v the_o impediment_n that_o keep_v we_o from_o it_o or_o by_o place_v and_o settle_v we_o on_o it_o or_o by_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v we_o in_o it_o in_o the_o first_o consideration_n repentance_n be_v a_o foundation_n because_o it_o remove_v away_o our_o sin_n that_o keep_v we_o from_o christ_n in_o the_o second_o consideration_n faith_n be_v a_o foundation_n because_o it_o place_v &_o fix_v our_o soul_n on_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o faith_n work_v by_o love_n whence_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o we_o be_v root_v and_o ground_v in_o christ_n through_o love_n as_o well_o as_o through_o faith_n eph._n 3._o 17._o for_o a_o faith_n that_o be_v without_o love_n be_v a_o faith_n of_o devil_n which_o will_n nor_o invite_v christ_n to_o come_v to_o we_o much_o less_o to_o dwell_v with_o we_o and_o least_o of_o all_o to_o dwell_v in_o we_o the_o solifidian_n as_o he_o will_v have_v his_o faith_n to_o dwell_v without_o love_n so_o he_o must_v be_v content_v himself_o to_o dwell_v without_o christ._n and_o last_o in_o the_o three_o consideration_n the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n may_v be_v call_v foundation_n because_o they_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v we_o in_o christ_n all_o these_o may_v in_o several_a respect_n be_v call_v foundation_n for_o all_o these_o have_v a_o immediate_a influence_n upon_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o grace_n which_o accompany_v they_o which_o influence_n no_o man_n possible_o can_v have_v and_o therefore_o no_o man_n just_o can_v claim_v but_o all_o these_o which_o be_v call_v foundation_n have_v as_o i_o say_v a_o immediate_a influence_n upon_o our_o soul_n to_o make_v we_o rise_v with_o christ_n our_o foundation_n and_o seek_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o where_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n col._n 3._o 1_o 2._o for_o as_o all_o the_o material_a building_n tend_v downward_o because_o the_o foundation_n be_v below_o so_o all_o the_o spiritual_a building_n tend_v upward_o say_v the_o same_o seraphical_a doctor_n because_o the_o foundation_n thereof_o be_v above_o even_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n on_o high_a heb._n 1._o 3._o wherefore_o we_o have_v need_n of_o a_o strong_a repentance_n to_o raise_v we_o up_o from_o earth_n that_o we_o may_v detest_v and_o forsake_v our_o own_o unrighteousness_n and_o we_o have_v need_n of_o a_o strong_a faith_n to_o raise_v we_o up_o to_o heaven_n that_o we_o may_v lay_v hold_n on_o our_o saviour_n righteousness_n not_o only_o in_o our_o confidence_n but_o also_o in_o our_o conscience_n not_o only_o in_o our_o application_n but_o also_o in_o our_o affection_n not_o only_o by_o our_o persuasion_n but_o also_o by_o our_o imitation_n a_o thing_n that_o be_v easy_o say_v but_o not_o so_o easy_o do_v for_o he_o that_o will_v make_v sure_a of_o a_o true_a faith_n must_v make_v sure_a of_o believe_v at_o least_o in_o the_o preparation_n of_o his_o mind_n all_o the_o truth_n that_o god_n have_v reveal_v as_o well_o as_o all_o the_o mercy_n that_o god_n have_v promise_v or_o christ_n have_v purchase_v and_o he_o that_o will_v make_v sure_a of_o a_o true_a repentance_n must_v make_v sure_a of_o bewail_v at_o least_o in_o the_o preparation_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o the_o desire_n of_o his_o soul_n all_o those_o sin_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v and_o of_o so_o bewail_v the_o sin_n he_o have_v commit_v as_o not_o wilful_o to_o commit_v the_o sin_n he_o have_v bewail_v he_o that_o have_v make_v sure_a of_o this_o faith_n and_o of_o this_o repentance_n have_v take_v the_o right_a way_n to_o make_v sure_a of_o his_o religion_n to_o serve_v god_n not_o our_o of_o custom_n but_o out_o of_o conscience_n not_o of_o hypocrisy_n but_o out_o of_o integrity_n not_o only_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o man_n but_o also_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o this_o man_n alone_o can_v come_v to_o make_v sure_a of_o his_o salvation_n we_o take_v now_o a_o contrary_a course_n every_o man_n make_v sure_a of_o his_o salvation_n but_o no_o man_n make_v sure_a of_o his_o religion_n be_v not_o christ_n jesus_n the_o same_o yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o as_o it_o be_v say_v heb._n 13._o 8._o how_o be_v it_o then_o that_o we_o be_v not_o the_o same_o christian_n yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o and_o yet_o we_o talk_v of_o nothing_o more_o than_o of_o go_v to_o christ_n while_o we_o do_v nothing_o less_o than_o draw_v near_o he_o have_v we_o look_v after_o christ_n in_o christ_n own_o church_n we_o shall_v certain_o have_v find_v he_o and_o have_v we_o once_o find_v he_o we_o shall_v not_o so_o willing_o have_v leave_v he_o have_v we_o see_v christ_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o our_o christian_a religion_n we_o will_v certain_o have_v communicate_v with_o he_o and_o have_v we_o once_o communicate_v with_o he_o we_o will_v not_o for_o the_o advantage_n or_o disadvantage_n of_o this_o world_n have_v so_o easy_o forsake_v his_o communion_n it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v that_o either_o we_o profess_v our_o christianity_n as_o hypocrite_n and_o so_o be_v not_o sure_a of_o our_o religion_n or_o that_o we_o be_v fall_v from_o our_o profession_n as_o apostate_n and_o can_v make_v sure_a of_o our_o salvation_n i_o speak_v this_o out_o of_o the_o love_n of_o truth_n and_o their_o soul_n who_o be_v my_o brethren_n and_o therefore_o hope_v it_o will_v offend_v none_o that_o either_o love_v the_o truth_n or_o the_o brotherhood_n and_o must_v not_o be_v affright_v if_o it_o do_v
continuance_n for_o herein_o gamaliel_n speak_v as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n if_o this_o counsel_n or_o this_o work_n be_v of_o man_n it_o will_v come_v to_o nought_o act_v 5._o 38._o if_o the_o counsel_n be_v to_o serve_v our_o own_o end_n the_o work_n be_v so_o to_o and_o then_o both_o counsel_n and_o work_n be_v of_o man_n of_o perverse_a and_o refractory_a man_n and_o be_v of_o man_n it_o will_v come_v to_o nought_o and_o god_n forbid_v but_o so_o it_o shall_v all_o this_o while_n here_o be_v a_o certainty_n of_o nothing_o but_o only_o of_o the_o good_a seed_n it_o be_v most_o sure_a the_o seed_n which_o god_n sow_n be_v good_a and_o yet_o neither_o hypocrite_n nor_o profane_a nor_o perverse_a man_n be_v full_o assure_v of_o its_o goodness_n because_o they_o have_v but_o a_o assurance_n of_o speculation_n not_o of_o affection_n such_o a_o assurance_n as_o swim_v only_o in_o the_o brain_n to_o convince_v they_o by_o way_n of_o information_n not_o such_o a_o assurance_n as_o sink_v down_o into_o the_o heart_n to_o convert_v they_o by_o way_n of_o reformation_n make_v they_o out_o of_o love_n with_o their_o own_o error_n &_o much_o less_o by_o way_n of_o confirmation_n make_v they_o real_o in_o love_n with_o god_n truth_n for_o this_o latter_a assurance_n belong_v only_o to_o those_o who_o follow_v st_n peter_n advice_n lay_v aside_o all_o malice_n or_o wickedness_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v against_o the_o profane_a person_n and_o all_o guile_n and_o hypocrisy_n that_o be_v against_o the_o hypocrite_n and_o envy_v and_o evil_a speaking_n that_o be_v against_o the_o perverse_a as_o new_o bear_v babe_n desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v thereby_o 1_o s._n pet._n 2._o 1_o 2._o not_o grow_v rich_a or_o powerful_a or_o honourable_a in_o this_o world_n but_o grow_v pious_a and_o religious_a and_o devout_a prepare_v for_o a_o better_a world_n for_o such_o man_n only_o receive_v that_o heavenly_a seed_n in_o good_a ground_n which_o be_v like_a to_o bring_v forth_o increase_v such_o man_n only_o receive_v the_o word_n in_o a_o honest_a and_o a_o good_a heart_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o a_o heart_n that_o be_v honest_a and_o free_a from_o hypocrisy_n in_o a_o heart_n that_o be_v good_a and_o free_a from_o wickedness_n that_o will_v not_o let_v the_o man_n be_v profane_a in_o a_o heart_n that_o be_v good_a and_o free_a from_o refractoriness_n that_o will_v not_o let_v the_o man_n be_v perverse_a for_o even_o aristotle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d require_v a_o man_n to_o be_v good_a in_o all_o these_o three_o respect_n without_o hypocrisy_n in_o his_o intention_n without_o profaneness_n in_o his_o action_n without_o perverseness_n in_o his_o affection_n and_o therefore_o sure_o christ_n school_n will_v not_o admit_v of_o any_o other_o scholar_n and_o if_o any_o other_o scholar_n be_v admit_v he_o will_v be_v but_o little_a benefitted_a by_o his_o learning_n for_o he_o that_o do_v not_o thus_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o grace_n have_v not_o yet_o taste_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v gracious_a 1_o s._n pet._n 2._o 3._o nor_o be_v it_o requisite_a here_o to_o insist_v upon_o the_o impediment_n of_o ignorance_n among_o we_o who_o say_v we_o live_v in_o the_o sunshine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o our_o eye_n be_v open_a to_o see_v more_o than_o all_o our_o father_n before_o we_o or_o all_o our_o neighbour_n about_o we_o or_o all_o our_o brethren_n with_o we_o for_o in_o truth_n we_o can_v just_o complain_v of_o ignorance_n who_o god_n have_v so_o effectual_o call_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n and_o faith_n in_o he_o by_o place_v we_o in_o a_o church_n which_o be_v able_a to_o protest_v with_o st._n paul_n and_o indeed_o every_o true_a christian_a church_n be_v the_o grand_a apostle_n of_o its_o nation_n aught_o to_o make_v good_a this_o apostolical_a protestation_n you_o know_v how_o i_o keep_v back_o nothing_o that_o be_v profitable_a unto_o you_o but_o have_v show_v you_o and_o have_v teach_v you_o public_o testify_a repentance_n towards_o god_n and_o faith_n towards_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n act_v 20._o 21_o 22._o i_o say_v we_o can_v just_o complain_v of_o ignorance_n who_o have_v our_o eye_n open_a to_o see_v the_o truth_n but_o we_o may_v and_o must_v complain_v of_o our_o detestable_a unthankfulness_n which_o have_v fill_v we_o with_o hypocrisy_n and_o profaneness_n and_o perverseness_n but_o especial_o with_o perverseness_n for_o while_o our_o eye_n be_v open_a our_o heart_n be_v shut_v shut_v fast_o than_o the_o iron_n gate_n that_o lead_v unto_o the_o city_n be_v shut_v against_o st_n peter_n because_o we_o general_o defy_v those_o who_o god_n have_v call_v his_o angel_n apoc._n 1._o 20._o for_o while_o they_o do_v go_v along_o with_o we_o and_o we_o with_o they_o the_o iron_z gate_n which_o lead_v unto_o the_o city_n of_o god_n the_o true_a jerusalem_n do_v open_a to_o we_o of_o its_o own_o accord_n like_o act_n 12._o 10._o we_o have_v no_o difficulty_n in_o religion_n which_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o conquer_v but_o now_o we_o have_v get_v very_o many_o difficulty_n which_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o subdue_v till_o we_o have_v conquer_v that_o which_o cause_v they_o all_o our_o own_o perverseness_n indeed_o we_o have_v get_v almost_o as_o many_o religion_n as_o man_n and_o yet_o as_o many_o difficulty_n as_o religion_n for_o have_v turn_v our_o jerusalem_n into_o babel_n god_n have_v just_o divide_v our_o language_n and_o which_o yet_o be_v far_o worse_a have_v also_o divide_v our_o mind_n that_o since_o we_o will_v not_o all_o speak_v the_o same_o thing_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v perfect_o join_v together_o in_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o in_o the_o same_o judgement_n 1_o cor._n 1._o 10._o so_o far_o be_v we_o now_o from_o enjoy_v god_n blessing_n because_o we_o have_v be_v far_o from_o obey_v his_o command_n for_o the_o command_n have_v not_o the_o weak_a obligation_n because_o it_o be_v utter_v by_o way_n of_o benediction_n but_o ought_v rather_o to_o have_v the_o strong_a influence_n rom._n 15._o 5_o 6._o now_o the_o god_n of_o all_o patience_n and_o consolation_n grant_v you_o to_o be_v like_o mind_a one_o towards_o another_o according_a to_o christ_n jesus_n that_o you_o may_v with_o one_o mind_n and_o one_o mouth_n glorify_v god_n even_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n we_o will_v not_o glorify_v god_n with_o one_o mouth_n when_o we_o be_v thereunto_o call_v and_o now_o we_o can_v glorify_v he_o with_o one_o mind_n that_o it_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a while_o we_o have_v pretend_v to_o thrust_v out_o the_o papist_n we_o have_v let_v in_o the_o atheist_n and_o that_o in_o the_o most_o dangerous_a kind_n of_o atheism_n if_o we_o be_v not_o overcome_v by_o it_o but_o the_o most_o damnable_a if_o we_o be_v the_o perverse_a atheism_n for_o it_o be_v a_o misery_n which_o may_v be_v lament_v but_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o though_o all_o the_o world_n can_v make_v one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n more_o than_o one_o man_n yet_o he_o may_v make_v himself_o no_o less_o than_o three_o atheist_n a_o atheist_n in_o his_o understanding_n by_o not_o know_v god_n a_o atheist_n in_o his_o will_n and_o affection_n by_o not_o love_v and_o regard_v he_o and_o a_o atheist_n in_o his_o life_n and_o conversation_n by_o not_o honour_v and_o obey_v he_o the_o first_o you_o may_v call_v the_o ignorant_a or_o blind_a atheist_n the_o second_o the_o perverse_a the_o three_o the_o profane_a atheist_n the_o heathen_a have_v most_o of_o the_o ignorant_a but_o the_o christian_a have_v most_o of_o the_o perverse_a and_o of_o the_o profane_a atheist_n and_o if_o you_o will_v ask_v which_o of_o these_o two_o be_v the_o worse_a there_o be_v no_o divine_a but_o must_v be_v unwilling_a to_o answer_v you_o because_o he_o can_v be_v willing_a to_o countenance_n either_o but_o yet_o you_o may_v take_v this_o observation_n in_o part_n of_o payment_n till_o you_o have_v a_o full_a answer_n to_o discharge_v the_o reckon_n that_o our_o bless_a saviour_n while_o he_o live_v on_o the_o earth_n convert_v many_o publican_n and_o sinner_n which_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o profane_a but_o very_o few_o pharisee_n and_o hypocrite_n which_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o perverse_a atheist_n chap._n 3._o of_o the_o substance_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o authority_n certainty_n and_o immutability_n there_o be_v two_o substantial_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n the_o first_o be_v conversant_a in_o the_o knowledge_n the_o second_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n so_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n
isaac_n and_o of_o jacob_n only_o we_o trust_v in_o he_o not_o by_o moses_n nor_o according_a to_o the_o law_n but_o by_o christ_n and_o according_a to_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o law_n which_o be_v give_v in_o horeb_n be_v now_o antiquate_a for_o it_o be_v give_v only_o to_o you_o jew_n but_o the_o law_n which_o we_o serve_v god_n by_o be_v a_o law_n give_v to_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v to_o abide_v to_o the_o world_n end_n for_o christ_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o as_o the_o law_n and_o as_o a_o everlasting_a law_n his_o testament_n as_o a_o faithful_a testament_n to_o remain_v for_o ever_o after_o which_o no_o law_n no_o commandment_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v or_o may_v be_v receive_v thus_o far_o justin_n martyr_n to_o the_o jew_n because_o thus_o far_o the_o apostle_n have_v state_v the_o question_n to_o the_o martyr_n and_o indeed_o to_o all_o christian_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o sum_n whereof_o be_v brief_o this_o that_o jesus_n christ_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n coequal_a and_o coessential_a with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v perfect_a god_n and_o perfect_a man_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o person_n and_o be_v that_o only_a eternal_a king_n priest_n and_o prophet_n which_o god_n in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n give_v unto_o his_o church_n to_o govern_v instruct_v and_o sanctify_v it_o for_o ever_o and_o this_o he_o prove_v by_o the_o promise_n before_o the_o law_n by_o the_o type_n and_o figure_n under_o the_o law_n and_o by_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o prophet_n and_o therefore_o in_o this_o same_o christ_n the_o christian_a church_n have_v already_o a_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o this_o world_n and_o shall_v have_v a_o perfect_a enjoyment_n of_o he_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o therefore_o may_v expect_v no_o other_o doctrine_n either_o for_o sanctification_n here_o or_o for_o salvation_n hereafter_o now_o in_o that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v allege_v to_o prove_v and_o confirm_v the_o new_a it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o both_o testament_n unless_o we_o will_v suppose_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o have_v make_v use_n of_o unfit_a and_o unproper_a proof_n a_o thing_n not_o agreeable_a with_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o prudent_a man_n who_o gain_v his_o knowledge_n by_o succession_n of_o time_n and_o much_o less_o agreeable_a with_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o omniscient_a and_o only_a wise_a god_n who_o see_v all_o thing_n at_o once_o in_o the_o looking-glass_n of_o eternity_n and_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n confirm_v the_o new_a testament_n by_o the_o old_a and_o have_v leave_v both_o the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o confirm_v we_o than_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o no_o christian_n can_v seek_v to_o weaken_v or_o diminish_v the_o authority_n of_o either_o testament_n but_o he_o must_v be_v a_o enemy_n to_o his_o own_o confirmation_n in_o the_o christian_a faith_n wherefore_o among_o all_o the_o contestation_n &_o contention_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o controversy_n do_v least_o become_v christian_n and_o do_v most_o shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o christianity_n which_o do_v seek_v to_o undervalue_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o infallible_a certainty_n in_o the_o word_n of_o chrst_n it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o infallible_a certainty_n in_o the_o christian_a religion_n therefore_o they_o be_v the_o great_a enemy_n to_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n who_o seek_v to_o add_v to_o the_o church_n by_o detract_n from_o the_o scripture_n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o a_o most_o undoubted_a authority_n the_o church_n can_v have_v none_o at_o all_o for_o sure_o we_o be_v the_o scripture_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o church_n without_o any_o fault_n or_o corruption_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v bind_v not_o only_o in_o common_a charity_n but_o also_o in_o common_a prudence_n and_o justice_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n have_v so_o keep_v it_o because_o all_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o text_n be_v to_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o church_n to_o who_o care_n and_o trust_n god_n do_v commit_v the_o keep_n of_o the_o text_n for_o god_n require_v two_o thing_n of_o his_o church_n first_o to_o be_v a_o faithful_a keeper_n then_o to_o be_v a_o faithful_a interpreter_n of_o his_o word_n and_o if_o we_o will_v needs_o say_v she_o have_v not_o be_v faithful_a in_o the_o keep_n how_o can_v we_o choose_v but_o say_v she_o may_v be_v as_o unfaithful_a in_o the_o interpret_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o that_o they_o be_v the_o great_a schismatics_n that_o ever_o be_v who_o under_o pretence_n of_o extol_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v question_n nay_o debase_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o these_o man_n have_v begin_v a_o everlasting_a schism_n which_o must_v needs_o last_v as_o long_o in_o the_o church_n as_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o christian_n so_o well_o persuade_v of_o god_n truth_n as_o to_o think_v it_o be_v worth_a the_o register_n and_o of_o the_o book_n wherein_o it_o be_v register_v as_o to_o think_v they_o worth_a the_o keep_n and_o cassander_n himself_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o this_o opinion_n in_o his_o consultation_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o chapter_n of_o the_o church_n i_o can_v deny_v but_o the_o chief_a cause_n of_o this_o calamity_n and_o distraction_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o they_o who_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o a_o empty_a kind_n of_o pride_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n do_v contemn_v and_o repel_v those_o who_o right_o and_o modest_o admonish_v they_o wherefore_o i_o think_v there_o be_v no_o firm_a peace_n to_o be_v hope_v for_o unless_o they_o begin_v the_o reconciliation_n who_o begin_v the_o distraction_n that_o be_v unless_o they_o who_o be_v set_v over_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n do_v remit_v somewhat_o of_o their_o excessive_a rigour_n and_o do_v yield_v somewhat_o to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o harken_v to_o the_o instruction_n and_o advice_n of_o many_o pious_a man_n do_v correct_v some_o manifest_a abuse_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n from_o whence_o they_o have_v late_o swerve_v i_o will_v set_v down_o the_o word_n in_o latin_a for_o their_o sake_n who_o do_v understand_v the_o author_n as_o well_o as_o i_o have_v the_o sense_n of_o they_o in_o english_a for_o their_o sake_n who_o do_v desire_v to_o understand_v their_o religion_n non_fw-fr negarim_n praecipuam_fw-la causam_fw-la huius_fw-la calamitatis_fw-la &_o distractionis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la illis_fw-la assignandam_fw-la qui_fw-la inani_fw-la quodam_fw-la fastu_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la potestatis_fw-la inflati_fw-la rectè_fw-la &_o modestè_fw-la admonentes_fw-la superbè_fw-la &_o fastidiosè_fw-la contempserunt_fw-la ac_fw-la repulerunt_fw-la quare_fw-la nullam_fw-la firmam_fw-la pacem_fw-la sperandam_fw-la puto_fw-la nisi_fw-la ab_fw-la iis_fw-la initium_fw-la fiat_fw-la qui_fw-la distractionis_fw-la causam_fw-la dederunt_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la two_o qui_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la gubernationi_fw-la praesunt_fw-la de_fw-la nimio_fw-la illo_fw-la rigore_fw-la aliquid_fw-la remittant_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la paci_fw-la aliquid_fw-la concedant_fw-la &_o multorum_fw-la piorum_fw-la votis_fw-la &_o monitis_fw-la obsequentes_fw-la manifestos_fw-la abusus_fw-la ad_fw-la regulam_fw-la divinarum_fw-la literarum_fw-la &_o veteris_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la à_fw-la quâ_fw-la deflexerunt_fw-la corrigant_fw-la cassander_n in_o consult_v de_fw-fr rel._n ad_fw-la ferdin_n 1._o &_o max._n 2._o imp._n cap._n de_fw-fr ecclesiâ_fw-la his_o judgement_n be_v plain_o this_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o rule_v and_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o that_o to_o advance_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n much_o more_o above_o it_o be_v to_o give_v the_o occasion_n of_o a_o calamitous_a if_o not_o of_o a_o remediless_a schism_n and_o distraction_n a_o distraction_n not_o possible_o to_o be_v remedy_v till_o this_o irreligious_a tenant_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o be_v renounce_v and_o it_o be_v high_a time_n though_o the_o tenant_n itself_o be_v yet_o scarce_o one_o hundred_o year_n old_a for_o all_o good_a christian_n that_o wish_v better_o to_o christ_n interest_n than_o their_o own_o to_o renounce_v it_o and_o leave_v raise_v objection_n against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n think_v to_o set_v up_o the_o church_n by_o pull_v down_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o beside_o that_o both_o scripture_n and_o church_n by_o their_o joint_a authority_n can_v never_o make_v we_o too_o sure_a of_o our_o religion_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o the_o church_n to_o stand_v if_o the_o scripture_n fall_v but_o they_o must_v needs_o both_o fall_v together_o whereas_o let_v the_o church_n not_o be_v
which_o he_o do_v continual_o defile_v with_o with_o his_o intemperances_n and_o uncleanness_n and_o this_o truth_n be_v grant_v which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v and_o scarce_o to_o be_v dispute_v it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v a_o absolute_a infallibility_n of_o faith_n in_o any_o man_n till_o there_o be_v in_o he_o a_o absolute_a impeccabilitie_n of_o life_n for_o from_o the_o corruption_n in_o manner_n will_v proceed_v the_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n and_o from_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n corruption_n in_o manner_n so_o that_o the_o doctrine_n can_v be_v the_o form_n and_o the_o duty_n the_o matter_n of_o religion_n since_o the_o false_a doctrine_n corrupt_v the_o duty_n and_o the_o defective_a duty_n corrupt_v or_o deprave_v the_o doctrine_n and_o we_o must_v allow_v the_o substance_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v altogether_o incorruptible_a and_o because_o there_o can_v be_v in_o it_o no_o corruption_n it_o be_v evident_a there_o be_v in_o it_o no_o physical_a composition_n second_o there_o be_v in_o religion_n no_o logical_a composition_n ex_fw-la subjecto_fw-la &_o accident_n for_o no_o part_n of_o it_o but_o be_v substantial_a and_o essential_a faith_n can_v no_o more_o save_v without_o good_a work_n then_o good_a work_n can_v be_v without_o faith_n it_o seem_v the_o man_n have_v faith_n who_o come_v run_v to_o kneel_v to_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o to_o ask_v he_o what_o he_o shall_v do_v to_o inherit_v eternal_a life_n sure_o a_o better_a faith_n than_o any_o of_o our_o solifidian_o have_v who_o neither_o run_n nor_o kneel_v nor_o ask_v yet_o our_o saviour_n answer_n be_v thou_o know_v the_o commandment_n s._n mark_v 10._o he_o say_v not_o thou_o know_v the_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o yet_o without_o doubt_n he_o include_v it_o but_o so_o it_o be_v christ_n himself_o teach_v we_o to_o go_v to_o heaven_n by_o obedience_n do_v plain_o show_v there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a faith_n without_o it_o and_o bona_fw-la opera_fw-la sunt_fw-la perniciosa_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la be_v a_o most_o pernicious_a &_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n though_o amsdortius_fw-la broach_v it_o out_o of_o zeal_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o out_o of_o opposition_n to_o the_o merit_n of_o condignity_n in_o good_a work_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o right_a way_n to_o build_v up_o faith_n by_o pull_v down_o obedience_n since_o the_o apostle_n himself_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v make_v know_v to_o all_o nation_n for_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n rom._n 16._o 26._o and_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o faith_n itself_o be_v a_o act_n of_o obedience_n and_o a_o duty_n enjoin_v in_o the_o first_o commandment_n so_o that_o we_o can_v take_v away_o faith_n from_o obedience_n but_o we_o must_v take_v away_o obedience_n from_o the_o first_o and_o great_a commandment_n that_o most_o require_v it_o which_o will_v not_o be_v so_o much_o as_o good_a judaisme_n and_o therefore_o sure_o can_v be_v good_a christianity_n for_o the_o jew_n do_v of_o purpose_n in_o their_o doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v entangle_v the_o commandment_n one_o with_o another_o to_o show_v that_o one_o can_v not_o be_v violate_v alone_o and_o that_o our_o obedience_n be_v alike_o due_a to_o all_o therefore_o do_v they_o teach_v that_o the_o preface_n i_o be_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n be_v direct_o on_o the_o other_o side_n answer_v by_o the_o six_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v do_v no_o murder_n for_o he_o that_o kill_v a_o man_n destroy_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o first_o commandment_n itself_o thou_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o god_n but_o i_o be_v direct_o answer_v by_o the_o seven_o thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v adultery_n for_o idolatry_n be_v a_o spiritual_a fornication_n the_o three_o for_o it_o seem_v they_o look_v on_o the_o second_o as_o include_v in_o the_o first_o thou_o shall_v not_o take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n in_o vain_a be_v answer_v by_o the_o eight_o thou_o shall_v not_o steal_v for_o he_o that_o will_v be_v a_o thief_n will_v not_o stick_v to_o forswear_v himself_o the_o four_o remember_v that_o thou_o keep_v holy_a the_o sabbath_n day_n be_v answer_v by_o the_o nine_o thou_o shall_v not_o bear_v false_a witness_n for_o he_o that_o will_v not_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n do_v bear_v false_a witness_n of_o god_n that_o he_o do_v not_o rest_n on_o the_o seven_o day_n the_o five_o honour_v thy_o father_n and_o thy_o mother_n be_v answer_v and_o as_o it_o be_v second_v by_o the_o ten_o thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v for_o he_o that_o give_v the_o reins_o to_o his_o concupiscence_n shall_v beget_v a_o son_n that_o shall_v dishonour_v and_o disobey_v he_o salomom_n jarchi_n in_o cantic_a cap._n 4._o v._n 5._o thus_o do_v they_o make_v one_o commandment_n not_o only_o as_o a_o second_o to_o vindicate_v and_o avenge_v but_o also_o as_o a_o principle_n champion_n to_o fortify_v and_o strengthen_v another_o that_o we_o shall_v pay_v the_o ready_a obedience_n to_o they_o all_o for_o they_o do_v not_o this_o to_o confound_v our_o duty_n towards_o god_n and_o our_o duty_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n but_o to_o show_v that_o though_o these_o several_a duty_n may_v be_v distinguish_v yet_o they_o may_v not_o be_v divide_v nor_o separate_v for_o that_o no_o one_o commandment_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n be_v accidental_a but_o all_o alike_o substantial_a in_o that_o obedience_n which_o god_n do_v now_o require_v and_o will_v hereafter_o reward_v so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o composition_n of_o subject_a and_o accident_n in_o religion_n three_o and_o last_o there_o be_v in_o religion_n no_o metaphysical_a composition_n ex_fw-la actu_fw-la &_o potentia_fw-la of_o act_n and_o power_n for_o though_o this_o metaphysical_a composition_n be_v in_o the_o angel_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o in_o religion_n it_o be_v in_o the_o angel_n for_o they_o have_v not_o all_o their_o essence_n and_o perfection_n together_o but_o as_o it_o be_v successive_o some_o after_o other_o so_o that_o in_o this_o respect_n religion_n have_v a_o prerogative_n above_o the_o angel_n and_o therefore_o may_v not_o stoop_v down_o so_o low_a as_o to_o worship_v they_o for_o that_o have_v its_o whole_a perfection_n altogether_o the_o old_a &_o the_o new_a testament_n differ_v only_o in_o modo_fw-la not_o in_o re_fw-mi for_o the_o same_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n save_v abraham_n that_o still_o save_v we_o and_o hence_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o all_o be_v either_o superstition_n of_o faction_n which_o can_v consist_v and_o be_v maintain_v without_o addition_n to_o the_o text_n the_o only_a rule_n of_o religion_n though_o it_o pretend_v not_o to_o be_v addition_n but_o only_a exposition_n or_o declaration_n as_o for_o example_n when_o christ_n have_v say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o that_o the_o laity_n or_o clergy_n not_o administer_a be_v not_o bind_v to_o drink_v of_o it_o may_v pretend_v to_o be_v a_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n ecclesia_fw-la declarat_fw-la nullo_n divino_fw-la praecepto_fw-la laicos_fw-la aut_fw-la clericos_fw-la non_fw-la conficientes_fw-la ad_fw-la bibendum_fw-la obligari_fw-la council_n trid._n sess._n 21._o cap._n 1._o but_o it_o be_v indeed_o a_o depravation_n of_o the_o truth_n by_o way_n of_o addition_n again_o when_o god_n have_v say_v thou_o sh'alt_v not_o worship_v any_o grave_a image_n for_o any_o man_n to_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o worship_v the_o grave_a image_n of_o venus_n or_o bacchus_n or_o jupiter_n but_o thou_o may_v worship_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o saint_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o declaration_n but_o be_v indeed_o a_o down_o right_a depravation_n by_o way_n of_o addition_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o fleight_n whereby_o baronius_n endeavour_v to_o elude_v the_o second_o commandment_n and_o why_o may_v not_o we_o as_o well_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v that_o be_v thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v a_o roman_n catholic_n but_o thou_o may_v kill_v a_o heretic_n thou_o shall_v not_o steal_v that_o be_v thou_o shall_v not_o assault_v or_o invade_v the_o property_n of_o a_o brother_n one_o of_o the_o godly_a party_n but_o thou_o may_v of_o one_o that_o be_v a_o malignant_a or_o a_o reprobate_n and_o yet_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o steal_v in_o a_o word_n to_o instance_n in_o the_o five_o commandment_n which_o have_v be_v alike_o trample_v upon_o by_o the_o two_o grand_a faction_n of_o christendom_n honour_v thy_o father_n and_o thy_o mother_n say_v god_n that_o be_v if_o he_o be_v not_o a_o heretic_n say_v the_o one_o side_n for_o than_o he_o may_v be_v excommunicate_v depose_v and_o kill_v if_o he_o be_v not_o a_o reprobate_n say_v the_o other_o side_n for_o than_o he_o may_v be_v dishonour_v and_o disobey_v and_o destroy_v for_o have_v no_o share_n in_o grace_n he_o have_v no_o right_a to_o
and_o in_o the_o hand_n as_o truth_n be_v oppose_v to_o dissimulation_n or_o hypocrisy_n three_o in_o its_o certainty_n or_o perseverance_n and_o of_o thy_o great_a mercy_n keep_v we_o in_o the_o same_o as_o truth_n be_v oppose_v to_o uncertainty_n or_o to_o levity_n and_o inconstancy_n religion_n then_o have_v and_o must_v have_v a_o twofold_a truth_n the_o first_o consist_v in_o a_o right_a apprehension_n whereby_o we_o believe_v the_o thing_n as_o it_o be_v the_o second_o in_o a_o right_a affection_n profession_n and_o action_n whereby_o we_o love_v and_o profess_v and_o do_v the_o thing_n as_o we_o believe_v and_o there_o can_v be_v a_o more_o religious_a prayer_n invent_v by_o the_o wit_n of_o piety_n nor_o a_o more_o affectionate_a prayer_n practise_v by_o the_o zeal_n of_o charity_n then_o that_o which_o be_v so_o remarkable_a both_o for_o its_o piety_n and_o for_o its_o charity_n in_o our_o own_o church_n collect_v 3_o sunday_n after_o easter_n almlghty_a god_n which_o show_v to_o all_o man_n that_o be_v in_o error_n the_o light_n of_o thy_o truth_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o may_v return_v into_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n there_o be_v its_o piety_n towards_o god_n right_o descant_v upon_o god_n intent_n in_o show_v the_o light_n of_o his_o truth_n to_o make_v man_n righteous_a not_o to_o make_v they_o inexcusable_a these_o thing_n i_o say_v that_o you_o may_v be_v save_v s._n joh._n 5._o 34._o not_o only_o convince_v say_v our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o yet_o he_o speak_v to_o those_o who_o have_v not_o the_o love_n of_o god_n v_o 42._o grant_v unto_o all_o they_o that_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o fellowship_n of_o christ_n religion_n that_o they_o may_v eschew_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o their_o profession_n and_o follow_v all_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o same_o there_o be_v its_o charity_n towards_o man_n affectionate_o desire_v that_o as_o they_o have_v a_o christian_a communion_n so_o they_o may_v also_o have_v a_o christian_a conversation_n lest_o their_o unchristian_a conversation_n destroy_v and_o disannul_v their_o christian_a communion_n which_o without_o doubt_v it_o have_v do_v already_o in_o many_o age_n of_o the_o church_n and_o will_v do_v still_o to_o the_o world_n end_n unless_o god_n in_o his_o mercy_n fill_v our_o heart_n more_o and_o more_o with_o this_o true_a piety_n towards_o himself_o and_o with_o this_o true_a charity_n one_o towards_o another_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o commandment_n be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o some_o divine_n account_v practical_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n because_o if_o these_o be_v leave_v out_o in_o our_o conversation_n what_o be_v true_a in_o itself_o of_o our_o creed_n be_v as_o it_o be_v false_a to_o we_o since_o either_o our_o profession_n give_v the_o lie_n to_o our_o apprehension_n and_o affection_n or_o our_o action_n to_o our_o profession_n for_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o speculative_a and_o practical_a truth_n speculatiuè_fw-la &_o practicè_fw-la credibilia_fw-la those_o thing_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v speculative_o and_o those_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v practical_o the_o first_o which_o be_v sum_v up_o in_o the_o creed_n be_v true_o believe_v if_o there_o be_v a_o conformity_n of_o the_o thing_n with_o the_o understanding_n but_o the_o second_o which_o be_v sum_v up_o in_o the_o decalogue_n be_v then_o only_o true_o believe_v when_o there_o be_v a_o conformity_n of_o the_o affection_n and_o of_o the_o profession_n and_o of_o the_o action_n with_o the_o belief_n thus_o they_o that_o worship_v image_n do_v expunge_v the_o second_o and_o they_o that_o resist_v magistrate_n do_v expunge_v the_o five_o commandment_n if_o not_o out_o of_o their_o book_n yet_o at_o least_o out_o of_o their_o faith_n in_o their_o book_n they_o may_v be_v true_a believer_n but_o in_o their_o life_n they_o be_v in_o these_o particular_n little_o less_o than_o infidel_n now_o see_v in_o what_o a_o miserable_a condition_n be_v the_o irreligious_a miscreant_n who_o so_o believe_v as_o to_o make_v void_a his_o own_o faith_n and_o so_o receive_v the_o truth_n as_o to_o make_v the_o truth_n itself_o a_o lie_n to_o he_o either_o for_o want_v of_o a_o sanctify_a affection_n in_o not_o love_v it_o or_o for_o want_n of_o a_o sanctify_a action_n in_o not_o practise_v it_o and_o hence_o we_o may_v likewise_o see_v and_o must_v confess_v that_o not_o he_o who_o know_v most_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o best_a believer_n but_o he_o that_o most_o love_v what_o he_o know_v in_o speculatives_n and_o he_o that_o most_o practice_n what_o he_o know_v in_o practic_n so_o that_o a_o great_a scholar_n may_v full_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o yet_o to_o he_o it_o may_v be_v as_o a_o lie_n because_o he_o love_v it_o not_o for_o to_o he_o it_o be_v what_o he_o desire_v it_o shall_v be_v contrariwise_o a_o ignorant_a peasant_n may_v not_o full_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o yet_o to_o he_o it_o may_v be_v the_o save_a truth_n because_o he_o love_v it_o for_o what_o be_v want_v in_o his_o head_n be_v make_v up_o by_o his_o heart_n o_o my_o soul_n glory_v not_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o the_o love_n of_o that_o knowledge_n glory_v not_o in_o thy_o learning_n if_o thou_o be_v mistress_n of_o any_o but_o in_o thy_o religion_n to_o which_o thou_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o servant_n learning_n may_v make_v a_o man_n wise_a to_o ostentation_n but_o it_o be_v only_a religion_n can_v make_v he_o wise_a to_o salvation_n do_v not_o then_o with_o pilate_n ask_v thy_o saviour_n what_o be_v truth_n and_o then_o go_v away_o without_o his_o answer_n much_o less_o may_v thou_o turn_v to_o those_o jew_n that_o help_v to_o crucify_v he_o for_o if_o thou_o know_v these_o thing_n happy_a be_v thou_o not_o because_o thou_o know_v they_o but_o if_o thou_o do_v they_o thy_o happiness_n consist_v not_o in_o know_v christ_n but_o in_o practise_v he_o nor_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v long_o defective_a in_o his_o practice_n and_o not_o to_o be_v defective_a also_o in_o his_o knowledge_n since_o what_o be_v sinful_a in_o the_o deliberate_a action_n be_v sinful_a in_o the_o will_n and_o what_o be_v sinful_a in_o the_o will_n be_v erroneous_a in_o the_o judgement_n or_o understanding_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v a_o heretic_n not_o only_o in_o credendis_fw-la but_o also_o in_o agendis_fw-la not_o only_o in_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o also_o in_o duty_n of_o life_n nay_o indeed_o he_o can_v easy_o be_v a_o heretic_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o life_n and_o still_o remain_v true_o orthodox_n in_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n as_o for_o example_n he_o that_o pray_v to_o a_o saint_n or_o angel_n in_o stead_n of_o god_n direct_o overthrow_v the_o first_o commandment_n but_o indirect_o also_o the_o first_o article_n of_o his_o creed_n i_o believe_v in_o one_o god_n for_o prayer_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n that_o may_v be_v offer_v only_o unto_o god_n again_o he_o that_o wilful_o dishonour_v his_o governor_n who_o god_n have_v set_v over_o he_o direct_o overthrow_v the_o five_o commandment_n but_o indirect_o also_o the_o nine_o article_n of_o his_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n for_o be_v a_o lover_n of_o division_n he_o be_v not_o a_o true_a believer_n of_o that_o communion_n and_o this_o we_o may_v take_v for_o a_o general_a doctrine_n fit_a to_o be_v receive_v then_o oppose_v first_o that_o any_o practical_a error_n which_o be_v against_o our_o duty_n towards_o god_n do_v tend_v to_o a_o speculative_a error_n against_o some_o part_n of_o the_o creed_n which_o concern_v god_n as_o he_o that_o do_v not_o honour_n god_n as_o god_n do_v in_o effect_n deny_v he_o to_o be_v maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n therefore_o say_v the_o psalmist_n o_o come_v let_v we_o worship_n and_o fall_v down_o and_o kneel_v before_o the_o lord_n our_o maker_n as_o if_o we_o can_v not_o true_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v our_o maker_n if_o we_o will_v not_o worship_v he_o with_o all_o possible_a reverence_n and_o fear_n second_o that_o any_o practical_a error_n which_o be_v against_o our_o duty_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n do_v tend_v against_o some_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n that_o have_v relation_n to_o man_n as_o he_o that_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o lawful_a governor_n civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a do_v in_o effect_n deny_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n three_o and_o last_o that_o any_o practical_a error_n against_o the_o duty_n which_o a_o man_n owe_v unto_o himself_o do_v tend_v against_o some_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o concern_v himself_o as_o he_o that_o be_v a_o common_a
also_o conformable_a thereto_o in_o our_o life_n either_o by_o our_o obedience_n or_o by_o our_o repentance_n so_o say_v the_o psalmist_n psal._n 119._o v._o 104._o through_o thy_o precept_n i_o get_v understanding_n therefore_o i_o hate_v every_o false_a way_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v through_o thy_o word_n i_o get_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o save_a truth_n and_o that_o make_v i_o avoid_v and_o abandon_v whatever_o be_v destructive_a of_o salvation_n for_o every_o way_n be_v a_o false_a way_n that_o lead_v from_o truth_n and_o from_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n wherefore_o the_o greek_a translation_n thus_o render_v the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o hate_v every_o wicked_a way_n for_o a_o false_a way_n be_v a_o wicked_a way_n and_o a_o wicked_a way_n be_v a_o false_a way_n the_o urim_n and_o thummim_n be_v inseparable_o join_v together_o so_o that_o what_o be_v against_o the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v also_o against_o the_o perfection_n of_o life_n and_o indeed_o the_o way_n of_o wickedness_n be_v a_o false_a way_n according_a to_o aristotle_n own_o determination_n of_o falsity_n who_o in_o the_o five_o of_o his_o metaph._n cap._n 29._o say_v that_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v false_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d either_o because_o they_o be_v not_o in_o be_v so_o a_o chimaera_n or_o a_o castle_n in_o the_o air_n be_v say_v to_o be_v false_a or_o because_o they_o make_v a_o false_a appearance_n and_o beget_v in_o we_o false_a apprehension_n and_o so_o a_o glass_n that_o represent_v those_o colour_n and_o those_o proportion_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o object_n be_v call_v a_o false_a glass_n in_o both_o these_o respect_n be_v the_o way_n of_o wickedness_n proper_o say_v to_o be_v a_o false_a way_n both_o because_o it_o be_v defective_a in_o a_o true_a be_v for_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a non_fw-la entity_n and_o also_o because_o it_o be_v excessive_a in_o a_o false_a be_v make_v a_o false_a appearance_n and_o beget_v in_o we_o false_a apprehension_n as_o if_o it_o be_v pleasant_a and_o profitable_a when_o as_o it_o be_v the_o only_a cause_n of_o all_o our_o woe_n and_o misery_n of_o all_o our_o punishment_n whether_o of_o sense_n or_o of_o loss_n and_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o every_o irreligious_a man_n have_v in_o himself_o these_o two_o property_n of_o a_o liar_n a_o wilful_a liar_n which_o be_v the_o false_a of_o all_o false_a man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d first_o he_o love_v and_o embrace_n that_o which_o be_v false_a and_o second_o he_o desire_v to_o propagate_v and_o derive_v it_o to_o other_o so_o the_o irreligious_a man_n whether_o he_o be_v irreligious_a out_o of_o superstition_n or_o out_o of_o faction_n delight_v in_o the_o error_n of_o his_o own_o way_n and_o desire_n to_o bring_v other_o into_o the_o same_o perdition_n as_o we_o find_v it_o speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o truth_n s._n matth._n 23._o 15._o that_o scribe_n pharisee_n and_o hypocrite_n compass_v sea_n and_o land_n to_o make_v one_o proselyte_n and_o when_o he_o be_v make_v they_o make_v he_o twofold_a more_o the_o child_n of_o hell_n than_o themselves_o factious_a man_n and_o hypocrite_n be_v much_o more_o zealous_a for_o their_o own_o new_a and_o false_a opinion_n then_o for_o god_n eternal_a and_o undoubted_a truth_n so_o that_o be_v there_o nothing_o else_o in_o impiety_n and_o irreligion_n but_o only_o its_o own_o falseness_n yet_o that_o alone_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v it_o eternal_o odious_a to_o god_n the_o god_n of_o truth_n and_o to_o the_o godly_a man_n the_o lover_n of_o truth_n for_o god_n can_v but_o be_v true_a even_o as_o he_o can_v but_o be_v god_n and_o as_o he_o be_v god_n he_o be_v truth_n for_o god_n be_v truth_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n some_o school_n divine_v do_v answer_n negative_o to_o this_o question_n whether_o god_n can_v dispense_v with_o a_o lie_n as_o he_o can_v with_o the_o other_o commandment_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o in_o his_o own_o essence_n he_o be_v truth_n so_o the_o master_n of_o advertency_n upon_o s._n chrys._n and_o the_o four_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n s._n hierome_n s._n ambrose_n s._n augustine_n and_o s_o gregory_n an_o deus_n possit_fw-la in_o mendacio_fw-la dispensari_fw-la sicut_fw-la in_o aliis_fw-la praeceptis_fw-la decalogi_fw-la negatur_fw-la quia_fw-la ex_fw-la sua_fw-la essentia_fw-la est_fw-la veritas_fw-la but_o we_o may_v go_v much_o further_o because_o the_o truth_n will_v go_v along_o with_o we_o for_o not_o only_o the_o nine_o commandment_n which_o require_v we_o to_o be_v true_a man_n be_v indispensable_a but_o also_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n which_o require_v we_o to_o be_v good_a man_n for_o indeed_o we_o can_v be_v one_o without_o the_o other_o therefore_o be_v all_o the_o moral_a law_n alike_o indispensable_a that_o be_v all_o that_o be_v intrinsical_o moral_a by_o its_o own_o nature_n whereby_o we_o do_v not_o only_o obey_v god_n but_o also_o imitate_v he_o and_o not_o extrinsecal_o moral_a be_v make_v so_o by_o god_n command_n or_o by_o divine_a precept_n whereby_o we_o only_o obey_v god_n but_o do_v not_o imitate_v he_o and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o all_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o what_o be_v intrinsically_a moral_n be_v a_o lie_n and_o consequent_o contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o god_n can_v will_v not_o dispense_v with_o his_o own_o truth_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v evil_a in_o itself_o be_v necessary_o displease_v unto_o god_n and_o that_o indeed_o under_o a_o twofold_a reason_n for_o as_o it_o be_v evil_a in_o itself_o and_o defective_a in_o a_o right_n be_v so_o it_o be_v opposite_a to_o his_o goodness_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o lie_n and_o redundant_fw-la or_o excessive_a in_o a_o false_a be_v by_o a_o counterfeit_a appearance_n and_o representation_n so_o it_o be_v opposite_a to_o his_o truth_n man_n may_v and_o do_v too_o much_o out_o of_o stomach_n and_o animositie_n oppose_v one_o another_o in_o matter_n of_o disputation_n but_o it_o be_v out_o of_o some_o spice_n of_o atheism_n if_o they_o wilful_o oppose_v god_n undoubted_a truth_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n either_o speculative_o by_o go_v in_o a_o false_a way_n or_o practical_o by_o go_v in_o a_o wicked_a way_n the_o next_o communicable_a property_n in_o god_n be_v goodness_n in_o his_o will_n which_o appear_v in_o that_o he_o have_v be_v so_o diffusive_a of_o himself_o in_o communicate_v his_o be_v to_o the_o creature_n therefore_o be_v our_o creation_n put_v as_o a_o ground_n of_o our_o thankfulness_n and_o thanksgiving_n psal._n 149._o 2._o let_v israel_n rejoice_v in_o he_o that_o make_v he_o which_o can_v not_o be_v if_o god_n have_v not_o create_v we_o out_o of_o his_o goodness_n to_o give_v we_o a_o good_a be_v to_o make_v we_o the_o object_n of_o his_o mercy_n but_o out_o of_o his_o power_n that_o by_o his_o absolute_a dominion_n he_o may_v give_v we_o a_o everlasting_a ill_a be_v to_o make_v we_o the_o object_n of_o his_o justice_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o excellent_a position_n of_o the_o protestant_a divine_n in_o colloquio_fw-la mempelgertensi_fw-la recite_v by_o osiander_n neque_fw-la ex_fw-la lege_fw-la neque_fw-la ex_fw-la ratione_fw-la humana_fw-la sed_fw-la ex_fw-la solo_fw-la evangelio_n de_fw-la praedestinatione_fw-la electorum_fw-la judicandum_fw-la est_fw-la that_o neither_o out_o of_o the_o law_n nor_o out_o of_o humane_a reason_n but_o only_o out_o of_o the_o gospel_n can_v we_o right_o judge_v of_o the_o predestination_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o the_o gospel_n condemn_v none_o for_o reprobate_n but_o those_o who_o despise_v the_o riches_n of_o god_n goodness_n and_o forbearance_n by_o their_o infidelity_n and_o impenitency_n heap_n upon_o themselves_o damnation_n but_o let_v we_o more_o particular_o consider_v this_o goodness_n of_o god_n both_o in_o regard_n of_o itself_o and_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o we_o first_o in_o regard_n of_o itself_o and_o so_o it_o be_v a_o essential_a and_o universal_a goodness_n demonstrable_a these_o three_o way_n per_fw-la viam_fw-la efficientiae_fw-la per_fw-la viam_fw-la sufficientiae_fw-la per_fw-la viam_fw-la eminentiae_fw-la as_o say_v bonavent_n by_o the_o way_n of_o efficiency_n for_o he_o make_v all_o that_o be_v good_a by_o the_o way_n of_o sufficiency_n for_o he_o satisfy_v the_o desire_n of_o all_o with_o good_a &_o by_o the_o way_n of_o eminency_n for_o all_o that_o be_v good_a be_v make_v by_o he_o be_v most_o eminent_o in_o he_o that_o make_v it_o second_o consider_v we_o this_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o regard_n of_o we_o and_o so_o it_o be_v the_o rule_n or_o exemplary_a cause_n of_o all_o goodness_n in_o man_n for_o our_o good_a of_o nature_n be_v according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n our_o good_a of_o grace_n be_v according_a to_o
unto_o you_o more_o than_o unto_o god_n judge_v you_o act._n 4._o 19_o there_o be_v no_o obligation_n of_o man_n that_o can_v reach_v to_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n to_o make_v we_o either_o neglect_n it_o or_o defile_v it_o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la arras_n do_v stint_v the_o heathen_a and_o much_o more_o the_o christian_n in_o his_o obedience_n he_o that_o obey_v the_o magistrare_fw-la to_o the_o altar_n give_v he_o his_o right_n he_o that_o obey_v he_o beyond_o or_o above_o the_o altar_n do_v he_o wrong_n load_v his_o authority_n with_o that_o sin_n which_o can_v help_v to_o hold_v it_o up_o but_o may_v help_v to_o pull_v it_o down_o it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v observe_v that_o among_o all_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o jewish_a temple_n none_o have_v that_o signal_n character_n of_o recommendation_n in_o the_o text_n that_o be_v give_v to_o azariah_n because_o he_o withstand_v uzziah_n the_o king_n when_o he_o invade_v the_o priest_n office_n 2_o chr._n 26._o 17._o therefore_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n concern_v he_o he_o it_o be_v that_o execute_v the_o priest_n office_n in_o the_o temple_n that_o solomon_n build_v at_o jerusalem_n 1_o chron._n 6._o 10._o as_o if_o none_o have_v be_v high_a priest_n but_o he_o who_o have_v so_o zealous_o so_o magnanimous_o vindicate_v the_o honour_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o priesthood_n for_o this_o be_v rabbi_n david_n gloss_n upon_o the_o place_n he_o be_v not_o the_o first_o priest_n of_o solomon_n temple_n for_o that_o be_v zadok_v nor_o be_v he_o the_o only_a high_a priest_n for_o there_o be_v many_o other_o but_o our_o rabbi_n say_v this_o be_v azariah_n in_o the_o day_n of_o uzziah_n who_o give_v his_o mind_n to_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o will_v not_o let_v uzziah_n offer_v incense_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v of_o he_o this_o be_v he_o that_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n because_o he_o be_v zealous_a for_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o priesthood_n and_o accept_v not_o the_o person_n of_o uzziah_n so_o kimchi_n and_o it_o appear_v again_o that_o this_o azariah_n be_v not_o to_o be_v name_v without_o some_o special_a note_n or_o title_n of_o honour_n for_o in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n and_o the_o eleven_o verse_n after_o the_o recite_v of_o his_o ancestor_n though_o some_o of_o they_o have_v execute_v the_o same_o office_n as_o well_o as_o himself_o yet_o he_o alone_o be_v call_v the_o ruler_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 1_o chro._n 9_o 11._o none_o have_v keep_v so_o good_a rule_n and_o order_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n as_o he_o therefore_o none_o so_o fit_a to_o be_v call_v a_o ruler_n of_o it_o and_o if_o thomas_n becket_n do_v indeed_o stand_v mere_o upon_o god_n interest_n in_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o he_o and_o his_o liege_n sovereign_a the_o doctor_n of_o paris_n do_v very_o ill_o in_o dispute_v eight_o and_o forty_o year_n after_o his_o death_n whether_o he_o be_v damn_v or_o save_v for_o no_o duty_n that_o he_o owe_v to_o his_o king_n can_v oblige_v he_o to_o be_v undutiful_a to_o his_o god_n and_o if_o he_o suffer_v death_n for_o not_o be_v undutiful_a to_o his_o father_n in_o heaven_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o as_o a_o dutiful_a child_n he_o receive_v his_o inheritance_n yet_o in_o that_o the_o doctor_n dispute_v it_o so_o long_o after_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o his_o festival_n be_v not_o present_o institute_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n much_o less_o celebrate_v with_o this_o preface_n gaudeamus_fw-la omnes_fw-la in_o domino_fw-la diem_fw-la festum_fw-la celebrantes_fw-la sub_fw-la honore_fw-la thomae_fw-la martyris_fw-la de_fw-la cujus_fw-la passione_n gaudent_fw-la angeli_fw-la &_o collaudant_fw-la filium_fw-la dei_fw-la let_v we_o all_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n celebrate_v a_o festival_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o thomas_n the_o martyr_n for_o who_o passion_n the_o angel_n rejoice_v and_o praise_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o which_o preface_n the_o festival_n of_o this_o suppose_a martyr_n be_v prefer_v before_o the_o proto-martyr_n in_o dignity_n though_o it_o follow_v the_o same_o three_o day_n after_o in_o time_n or_o else_o the_o doctor_n of_o paris_n do_v think_v it_o lawful_a if_o not_o laudable_a to_o dispute_v against_o the_o solemnity_n of_o their_o own_o church_n when_o they_o find_v so_o much_o do_v upon_o so_o little_a ground_n and_o do_v also_o themselves_o in_o effect_n declare_v that_o as_o no_o civil_a authority_n can_v so_o likewise_o no_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n can_v oblige_v equal_o with_o god_n much_o less_o either_o above_o he_o or_o against_o he_o four_o religion_n be_v free_a from_o servitude_n the_o church_n may_v be_v in_o bondage_n not_o so_o the_o religion_n that_o make_v a_o church_n the_o israelite_n ask_v liberty_n of_o pharaoh_n for_o themselves_o to_o go_v and_o serve_v god_n they_o ask_v not_o liberty_n for_o god_n service_n that_o have_v never_o be_v in_o durance_n nor_o in_o captivity_n and_o s._n paul_n very_o plain_o determine_v this_o controversy_n for_o so_o profane_a man_n be_v willing_a to_o make_v it_o when_o god_n church_n be_v under_o persecution_n though_o in_o itself_o it_o be_v a_o undoubted_a truth_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 9_o i_o suffer_v trouble_n as_o a_o evil_a doer_n even_o unto_o bond_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o bind_v the_o bond_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o hand_n be_v far_o from_o the_o tongue_n and_o far_o from_o the_o heart_n they_o can_v hinder_v a_o honest_a man_n from_o speak_v god_n truth_n amid_o the_o enemy_n thereof_o much_o less_o from_o love_v it_o excellent_o oecumenius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d no_o bond_n can_v fetter_v the_o tongue_n but_o only_a fearfulness_n and_o unfaithfulness_n and_o those_o be_v ingredient_n of_o the_o world_n not_o of_o god_n religion_n five_o and_o last_o religion_n be_v free_a from_o coaction_n there_o be_v no_o oblation_n so_o acceptable_a as_o that_o which_o be_v voluntary_a and_o there_o be_v no_o oblation_n so_o voluntary_a as_o that_o whereby_o a_o man_n offer_v himself_o to_o god_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o child_n of_o jew_n and_o other_o infidel_n who_o never_o embrace_v the_o christian_a faith_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v without_o their_o parent_n consent_v till_o they_o can_v give_v their_o own_o not_o only_o because_o it_o be_v against_o the_o justice_n of_o nature_n to_o take_v the_o child_n from_o his_o own_o parent_n while_o he_o be_v yet_o as_o it_o be_v a_o limb_n or_o part_n of_o they_o which_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v till_o he_o can_v dispose_v of_o himself_o but_o also_o because_o it_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o religion_n to_o offer_v unto_o god_n a_o unvoluntary_a sacrifice_n and_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n though_o the_o church_n never_o think_v she_o can_v be_v sufficient_o zealous_a in_o propagate_a the_o catholic_n faith_n yet_o she_o never_o think_v that_o jew_n and_o pagan_n be_v to_o be_v compel_v to_o embrace_v it_o only_o they_o be_v to_o be_v compel_v not_o to_o hinder_v or_o to_o blaspheme_v it_o so_o aquinas_n 22ae_fw-la qu._n 10._o art_n 8._o utrum_fw-la infideles_fw-la compellendi_fw-la sint_fw-la ad_fw-la sidem_fw-la whether_o infidel_n be_v to_o be_v compel_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n he_o answer_n with_o a_o distinction_n those_o infidel_n that_o never_o receive_v the_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v compel_v to_o it_o quia_fw-la credere_fw-la est_fw-la voluntarium_fw-la because_o to_o believe_v be_v to_o give_v a_o voluntary_a assent_n but_o those_o infidel_n who_o once_o receive_v the_o faith_n and_o be_v since_o fall_v from_o it_o as_o heretic_n and_o apostate_n be_v to_o be_v compel_v by_o corporal_a punishment_n to_o become_v regular_a and_o orderly_a christian_n that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v to_o fullfil_v their_o promise_n and_o to_o retain_v what_o they_o do_v receive_v nam_fw-la sicut_fw-la vovere_fw-la est_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la sed_fw-la reddere_fw-la est_fw-la necessitatis_fw-la ita_fw-la fidem_fw-la accipere_fw-la est_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la sed_fw-la tenere_fw-la eam_fw-la acceptam_fw-la est_fw-la necessitatis_fw-la for_o as_o it_o be_v voluntary_a to_o make_v a_o vow_n but_o necessary_a to_o keep_v it_o when_o it_o be_v make_v so_o it_o be_v voluntary_a to_o receive_v the_o faith_n but_o necessary_a to_o retain_v it_o when_o it_o be_v receive_v and_o st._n augustine_n in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o his_o retractation_n ca._n 5._o do_v most_o ingenuous_o recall_v his_o former_a opinion_n that_o schismatics_n be_v not_o to_o be_v constrain_v and_o compel_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n i_o retract_v say_v he_o that_o in_o my_o first_o book_n against_o the_o party_n of_o donatus_n i_o do_v say_v i_o be_v not_o please_v that_o the_o secular_a power_n shall_v violent_o force_v schismatics_n to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n &_o verè_fw-la mihi_fw-la tunc_fw-la non_fw-la placebat_fw-la
continency_n than_o they_o do_v observe_v but_o concern_v this_o the_o world_n will_v more_o willing_o leave_v man_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o their_o own_o conscience_n how_o to_o serve_v god_n with_o the_o most_o purity_n and_o with_o the_o least_o distraction_n if_o they_o do_v but_o answer_v to_o themselves_o this_o question_n whether_o it_o be_v better_a that_o they_o which_o have_v wife_n be_v as_o though_o they_o have_v none_o 1_o cor._n 7._o 29._o or_o that_o they_o which_o have_v no_o wife_n be_v as_o though_o they_o have_v they_o for_o what_o be_v best_a be_v doubtless_o in_o this_o as_o in_o other_o case_n the_o determination_n of_o religion_n for_o that_o labour_v to_o make_v man_n like_o god_n both_o in_o their_o body_n and_o in_o their_o soul_n in_o their_o body_n by_o sobriety_n temperance_n and_o chastity_n either_o virginal_a or_o vidual_a or_o conjugal_a in_o their_o soul_n by_o holy_a meditation_n and_o more_o holy_a affection_n and_o where_o man_n do_v most_o true_o express_v this_o holiness_n in_o their_o life_n and_o conversation_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o there_o be_v the_o best_a and_o the_o pure_a religion_n although_o it_o be_v often_o see_v that_o where_o be_v the_o best_a and_o the_o pure_a religion_n there_o man_n do_v not_o always_o express_v the_o same_o in_o their_o life_n and_o conversation_n which_o make_v the_o same_o s._n augustine_n declare_v this_o as_o a_o dogmatical_a sanction_n ex_fw-la malorum_fw-la christianorum_fw-la moribus_fw-la non_fw-la vituperandam_fw-la esse_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la aug._n lib._n de_fw-fr mor._n eccl._n cath._n cap._n 34._o that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o the_o misdemeanour_n of_o some_o man_n that_o live_v in_o her_o communion_n since_o she_o herself_o condemn_v those_o misdemeanour_n and_o labour_n to_o correct_v they_o the_o upshot_n of_o all_o may_v be_v this_o that_o not_o the_o practical_a but_o the_o doctrinal_a miscarriage_n of_o man_n be_v to_o be_v impute_v to_o the_o church_n and_o where_o be_v few_o of_o such_o miscarriage_n there_o be_v most_o of_o truth_n and_o goodness_n where_o be_v most_o of_o these_o there_o be_v most_o of_o the_o pure_a religion_n for_o as_o manner_n make_v the_o man_n so_o religion_n make_v the_o manner_n and_o it_o be_v little_a other_o than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n that_o say_v hell_n be_v full_a of_o moral_a honest_a man_n though_o it_o pretend_v to_o set_v up_o faith_n for_o s._n paul_n plain_o show_v that_o faith_n alone_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o moral_a honesty_n in_o the_o jew_n heb._n 11._o so_o that_o it_o be_v too_o much_o for_o any_o man_n to_o doubt_n much_o more_o to_o deny_v but_o that_o faith_n alone_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o true_a moral_a honesty_n in_o the_o christian_n whence_o our_o bless_a saviour_n preach_v only_o moral_a duty_n s._n luk_n 21._o 31._o take_v heed_n lest_o your_o heart_n be_v overcharge_v with_o surfeit_v and_o drunkenness_n and_o care_n of_o this_o life_n etc._n etc._n he_o bid_v they_o be_v temperate_a sober_a and_o content_a watch_n and_o pray_v and_o what_o be_v all_o this_o but_o moral_a honesty_n yet_o if_o this_o right_o do_v and_o it_o be_v right_o do_v only_o in_o true_a believer_n proceed_v not_o from_o faith_n we_o must_v infer_v that_o we_o may_v stand_v in_o judgement_n without_o faith_n for_o so_o it_o follow_v v_o 36._o that_o you_o may_v stand_v before_o the_o son_n of_o man_n nor_o will_v christ_n have_v thus_o teach_v daily_o in_o the_o temple_n v_o 37._o have_v this_o not_o be_v the_o right_a way_n of_o preach_v true_a faith_n in_o christ_n and_o what_o he_o prescribe_v in_o his_o doctrine_n he_o perform_v in_o his_o practice_n for_o his_o night_n be_v spend_v in_o pray_v as_o his_o day_n in_o preach_v and_o therefore_o to_o say_v that_o hell_n be_v full_a of_o moral_a honest_a man_n be_v to_o say_v that_o hell_n be_v full_a of_o true_a believer_n and_o consequent_o to_o blaspheme_v that_o precious_a faith_n in_o christ_n which_o can_v not_o sanctify_v the_o hand_n in_o work_v do_v it_o not_o first_o sanctify_v the_o heart_n in_o believe_v and_o we_o can_v but_o say_v that_o noah_n prepare_v the_o ark_n and_o abraham_n offer_v his_o son_n be_v material_o a_o act_n of_o obedience_n that_o moral_a honest_a virtue_n which_o this_o world_n care_v not_o to_o profess_v much_o less_o to_o practice_v though_o it_o be_v formal_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o we_o may_v say_v concern_v those_o other_o example_n there_o cite_v by_o saint_n paul_n wherein_o some_o virtue_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o catalogue_n of_o moral_a honesty_n will_v come_v in_o for_o the_o material_a part_n though_o faith_n alone_o may_v happy_o challenge_v the_o formal_a part_n of_o the_o performance_n and_o aquina_n distinction_n of_o actus_fw-la virtutis_fw-la imperatus_fw-la &_o c●●●tus_fw-la will_v reconcile_v the_o difference_n for_o all_o virtuous_a act_n true_o so_o call_v be_v the_o act_n of_o faith_n imperatiuè_fw-fr as_o command_v by_o it_o whence_o s._n augustine_n style_v the_o best_a work_n of_o unbeliever_n but_o gild_a or_o glitter_a sin_n though_o only_o the_o peculiar_a act_n of_o believe_a and_o confess_v be_v the_o act_n of_o faith_n elicitive_a as_o immediate_o and_o direct_o flow_v from_o it_o for_o faith_n be_v in_o the_o soul_n as_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o the_o body_n and_o as_o all_o motion_n in_o the_o body_n be_v by_o redundancy_n from_o the_o soul_n so_o all_o good_a motion_n in_o the_o soul_n be_v by_o redundancy_n from_o faith_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v there_o be_v so_o great_a a_o influence_n of_o our_o word_n upon_o our_o manner_n and_o of_o our_o manner_n upon_o our_o doctrine_n and_o consequent_o upon_o our_o faith_n for_o as_o evil_a word_n corrupt_v good_a manner_n so_o also_o evil_a manner_n corrupt_v good_a word_n it_o have_v be_v the_o fate_n of_o religion_n first_o to_o decay_v in_o man_n life_n then_o in_o their_o doctrine_n first_o in_o their_o work_n then_o in_o their_o faith_n so_o that_o irreligion_n first_o get_v into_o our_o conversation_n then_o into_o our_o catechism_n and_o the_o miscarriage_n of_o church_n have_v first_o be_v practical_a and_o after_o that_o dogmatical_a man_n be_v general_o more_o zealous_a for_o their_o credit_n in_o labour_v to_o justify_v their_o error_n then_o for_o their_o innocency_n in_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v err_v the_o three_o and_o last_o attribute_n we_o be_v now_o to_o consider_v in_o god_n be_v his_o mercy_n whereby_o he_o free_o forgive_v what_o be_v due_a unto_o himself_o for_o as_o the_o act_n of_o grace_n be_v most_o clear_o evidence_v in_o free_o give_v what_o be_v not_o due_a unto_o the_o creature_n so_o be_v the_o act_n of_o mercy_n most_o conspicuous_a in_o free_o forgive_a what_o be_v due_a from_o it_o aquinas_n make_v god_n mercy_n the_o foundation_n of_o all_o his_o work_n of_o distributive_a justice_n even_o in_o reward_v the_o righteous_a then_o much_o more_o be_v it_o the_o foundation_n of_o his_o not_o work_v according_o to_o his_o vindicative_a justice_n in_o the_o punishment_n of_o our_o unrighteousness_n it_o be_v a_o heavenly_a contemplation_n of_o he_o and_o such_o heavenly_a contemplation_n be_v very_o frequent_a in_o the_o angelical_a doctor_n opus_fw-la divinae_fw-la justitiae_fw-la semper_fw-la praesupponit_fw-la opus_fw-la misericordiae_fw-la &_o in_o eo_fw-la fundatur_fw-la 1_o par._n qu._n 21._o be_v 4._o the_o work_n of_o god_n justice_n always_o presuppose_v the_o work_n of_o his_o mercy_n and_o be_v found_v in_o it_o for_o the_o creature_n can_v have_v nothing_o due_a to_o it_o but_o for_o some_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o it_o and_o the_o creature_n have_v nothing_o in_o it_o which_o do_v not_o flow_v immediate_o from_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o creator_n therefore_o that_o goodness_n alone_o must_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o that_o the_o creature_n be_v capable_a of_o which_o alone_o put_v the_o same_o into_o a_o capacity_n of_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o et_fw-la sic_fw-la in_o quolibet_fw-la opere_fw-la dei_fw-la apparet_fw-la misericordia_fw-la quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la primam_fw-la radicem_fw-la ejus_fw-la cujus_fw-la virtus_fw-la salvator_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la consequentibus_fw-la &_o etiam_fw-la vehementius_fw-la in_o eye_n operatur_fw-la sicut_fw-la causa_fw-la primaria_fw-la vehementius_fw-la influit_fw-la quam_fw-la causa_fw-la secunda_fw-la word_n that_o deserve_v to_o be_v engrave_v with_o letter_n of_o gold_n and_o much_o more_o to_o be_v engrave_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o there_o be_v no_o work_n of_o god_n but_o mercy_n be_v the_o ground_n and_o root_n of_o it_o and_o this_o ground_n be_v preserve_v in_o all_o the_o building_n this_o root_n be_v see_v in_o all_o the_o fruit_n that_o grow_v from_o it_o nay_o it_o have_v a_o great_a efficacy_n of_o work_v above_o they_o
of_o god_n be_v more_o to_o be_v magnify_v by_o reverence_n and_o adoration_n though_o we_o speak_v but_o little_a then_o by_o all_o the_o loud_a praise_n and_o hymn_n which_o we_o can_v utter_v while_o we_o continue_v guilty_a of_o irreverence_n and_o s._n paul_n set_v forth_o the_o condition_n of_o a_o true_a convert_n make_v he_o reverend_a in_o his_o behaviour_n as_o well_o as_o zealous_a in_o his_o thanksgiving_n for_o say_v he_o fall_v down_o on_o his_o face_n he_o will_v worship_v god_n and_o report_n that_o god_n be_v in_o you_o of_o a_o truth_n he_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_n there_o be_v his_o reverence_n he_o report_v that_o god_n be_v in_o you_o of_o a_o truth_n there_o be_v his_o thanksgiving_n and_o if_o either_o of_o these_o be_v want_v for_o aught_o we_o can_v see_v by_o the_o text_n he_o be_v yet_o no_o true_a convert_n but_o be_v still_o in_o the_o same_o state_n of_o ignorance_n and_o of_o unbelief_n as_o when_o he_o first_o come_v into_o the_o church_n to_o hear_v those_o that_o prophesy_v but_o the_o better_a to_o set_v forth_o the_o reverence_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v part_v from_o the_o true_a religion_n i_o will_v brief_o run_v over_o those_o ten_o name_n of_o god_n which_o saint_n hierome_n have_v collect_v together_o in_o one_o of_o his_o epistle_n to_o marcellus_n ep_n 136._o for_o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o those_o name_n but_o will_v strike_v a_o terror_n into_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n when_o he_o come_v to_o bow_v himself_o before_o the_o most_o high_a god_n which_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o not_o one_o of_o all_o these_o name_n be_v once_o mention_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o canticle_n quia_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la spirituali_fw-la epithalamio_n merito_fw-la ea_fw-la nomina_fw-la praetermittuntur_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la incutiendum_fw-la terrorem_fw-la accommodata_fw-la erant_fw-la because_o that_o song_n of_o song_n be_v make_v to_o express_v the_o marriage_n joy_n of_o the_o soul_n with_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o use_v any_o of_o those_o terrible_a name_n of_o god_n which_o may_v occasion_v the_o interruption_n of_o that_o joy_n the_o first_o name_n of_o god_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o lxx_o but_o by_o aquila_n according_a to_o its_o etymology_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o strong_a one_o this_o name_n exod._n 20._o 5._o be_v join_v with_o jealousy_n in_o that_o very_a commandment_n wherein_o god_n require_v our_o religion_n to_o be_v with_o reverence_n as_o well_o as_o without_o idolatry_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o jealous_a god_n he_o be_v god_n and_o able_a to_o punish_v we_o he_o be_v jealous_a and_o will_v not_o let_v we_o escape_v unpunished_a no_o nor_o our_o child_n after_o we_o if_o we_o show_v that_o we_o hate_v he_o by_o love_a irreligion_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o superstition_n or_o by_o profaneness_n whether_o by_o idolatry_n or_o by_o irreverence_n for_o we_o may_v certain_o bring_v a_o vengeance_n and_o a_o curse_n not_o only_o upon_o ourselves_o but_o also_o upon_o our_o posterity_n by_o our_o irreverence_n which_o be_v against_o the_o positive_a precept_n no_o less_o then_o by_o our_o idolatry_n which_o be_v against_o the_o negative_a precept_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n the_o second_o name_n of_o god_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o this_o name_n we_o find_v hab._n 1._o 12._o in_o these_o word_n be_v thou_o not_o from_o everlasting_a o_o lord_n my_o god_n my_o holy_a one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d my_o god_n and_o mine_n holy_a one_o be_v put_v as_o term_n convertible_a for_o he_o be_v but_o my_o idol_n not_o my_o god_n unless_o he_o be_v also_o my_o holy_a one_o that_o be_v one_o who_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v holy_a and_o rejoice_v that_o he_o be_v so_o the_o profane_a person_n can_v deny_v god_n to_o be_v the_o holy_a one_o though_o he_o rejoice_v not_o in_o his_o holiness_n he_o will_v fain_o make_v a_o division_n betwixt_o these_o two_o property_n of_o god_n power_n and_o holiness_n he_o will_v either_o have_v god_n a_o strong_a one_o without_o holiness_n to_o allow_v profaneness_n or_o he_o will_v have_v he_o a_o holy_a one_o without_o strength_n that_o he_o may_v not_o avenge_v it_o but_o we_o must_v look_v upon_o his_o strength_n as_o the_o fortress_n and_o bullwork_n of_o his_o holiness_n that_o if_o we_o will_v not_o learn_v to_o detest_v profaneness_n and_o irreverence_n because_o of_o his_o holiness_n yet_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o dread_v it_o because_o of_o his_o strength_n the_o three_o name_n of_o god_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o meet_v withal_o in_o the_o first_o word_n of_o the_o bible_n gen._n 1._o 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dii_fw-la creavit_fw-la where_o be_v a_o noun_n of_o the_o plural_a number_n signify_v god_n with_o a_o verb_n of_o the_o singular_a which_o strange_a syntaxis_fw-la have_v one_o gloss_n among_o the_o jew_n another_o among_o the_o christian_n among_o the_o jew_n it_o be_v take_v for_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o god_n majesty_n for_o so_o say_v aben_n ezra_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o holy_a tongue_n that_o be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v a_o course_n or_o way_n of_o honour_n to_o speak_v of_o a_o great_a person_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n to_o wit_n thereby_o to_o intimate_v his_o greatness_n but_o among_o the_o christian_n this_o same_o manner_n of_o speech_n be_v take_v for_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o holy_a &_o undivided_a trinity_n the_o noun_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n signify_v the_o plurality_n of_o person_n the_o verb_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n the_o unity_n of_o essence_n we_o may_v according_o make_v a_o excellent_a use_n of_o either_o gloss_n in_o our_o devotion_n for_o if_o we_o serious_o consider_v the_o greatness_n of_o god_n majesty_n we_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o keep_v our_o distance_n in_o our_o prayer_n and_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o that_o undecent_a and_o ungodly_a familiarity_n which_o beget_v a_o contempt_n of_o god_n if_o at_o lest_o it_o be_v not_o beget_v of_o it_o for_o it_o will_v certain_o end_v in_o a_o slight_n of_o his_o majesty_n if_o it_o do_v not_o begin_v in_o it_o this_o ungodly_a familiarity_n with_o god_n teach_v we_o to_o offer_v that_o to_o god_n which_o do_v cost_v we_o nothing_o contrary_a to_o his_o resolution_n who_o be_v a_o man_n after_o god_n own_o heart_n and_o therefore_o best_a acquaint_v with_o his_o like_n 2_o sam._n 24._o 24._o nay_o but_o i_o will_v buy_v it_o of_o thou_o at_o a_o price_n neither_o will_v i_o offer_v burnt-offering_n unto_o the_o lord_n my_o god_n of_o that_o which_o do_v cost_v i_o nothing_o for_o indeed_o such_o offering_n do_v but_o proclaim_v a_o contempt_n of_o god_n as_o appear_v mal._n 1._o 7._o they_o that_o offer_v pollute_v bread_n do_v in_o effect_n say_v the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v contemptible_a and_o they_o be_v according_o send_v to_o court_n to_o learn_v better_a manner_n and_o better_a language_n v_o 8._o offer_v it_o now_o unto_o thy_o governor_n will_v he_o be_v please_v with_o thou_o or_o accept_v thy_o person_n the_o chalde_a paraphrase_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o thy_o king_n but_o the_o hebrew_n word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o thy_o under_a governor_n and_o indeed_o the_o jew_n have_v no_o other_o after_o their_o captivity_n offer_v such_o stuff_n as_o this_o but_o to_o the_o captain_n that_o be_v set_v over_o thou_o to_o thy_o governor_n who_o be_v no_o king_n but_o himself_o under_o command_n and_o he_o will_v reject_v thy_o gift_n and_o scorn_n and_o disdain_v thou_o and_o how_o then_o dare_v thou_o offer_v it_o unto_o thy_o god_n who_o be_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n how_o dare_v thou_o offer_v the_o blind_a the_o lame_a the_o sick_a to_o he_o for_o a_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v thy_o bind_a duty_n when_o as_o thou_o dare_v not_o offer_v it_o to_o thy_o governor_n as_o a_o free_a and_o a_o voluntary_a gift_n we_o may_v offer_v unto_o god_n blind_a prayer_n for_o want_v of_o premeditation_n which_o be_v the_o soul_n foresight_n lame_a prayer_n for_o want_n of_o good_a affection_n which_o be_v the_o foot_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o sick_a prayer_n by_o reason_n of_o our_o undigested_a devotion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o i_o conceive_v it_o shall_v be_v read_v in_o hes●chius_n and_o not_o in_o two_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o be_v sick_a who_o stomach_n be_v oppress_v with_o crudity_n and_o inconcoction_n so_o that_o he_o care_v not_o for_o his_o meat_n and_o be_v beside_o clean_o out_o of_o temper_n and_o such_o be_v sick_a prayer_n which_o be_v crude_a indigested_a distemper_a prayer_n thus_o we_o may_v offer_v
unto_o abraham_n and_o other_o patriarch_n of_o deliver_v his_o people_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n out_o of_o the_o heavy_a bondage_n which_o they_o sustain_v many_o hundred_o year_n under_o the_o oppress_a hand_n of_o the_o egyptian_n but_o he_o assure_v moses_n that_o now_o he_o be_v about_o to_o complete_a that_o promise_n in_o their_o deliverance_n and_o hereby_o god_n insinuate_v to_o moses_n that_o the_o name_n jehovah_n signify_v he_o qui_fw-la constans_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la promissis_fw-la suis_fw-la &_o omne_fw-la promissa_fw-la sua_fw-la quasi_fw-la facit_fw-la subsistere_fw-la who_o be_v constant_a and_o faithful_a in_o the_o performance_n of_o all_o his_o promise_n the_o duty_n and_o comfort_n which_o from_o this_o sacred_a name_n may_v flow_v into_o our_o life_n and_o conscience_n be_v divers_a first_o from_o that_o expression_n of_o god_n to_o moses_n by_o my_o name_n jehovah_n etc._n etc._n we_o may_v infer_v that_o they_o only_o know_v god_n to_o be_v jehovah_n who_o doubt_v not_o of_o his_o good_a or_o fatherly_a will_n towards_o they_o and_o have_v find_v by_o a_o joyful_a experience_n or_o feel_v in_o the_o quiet_a peace_n and_o calm_a of_o a_o undisturbed_a conscience_n that_o he_o be_v true_a and_o faithful_a in_o the_o fulfil_n of_o his_o word_n in_o that_o by_o a_o gracious_a pardon_n he_o have_v abolish_v the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o by_o the_o powerful_a work_n of_o his_o spirit_n upon_o their_o soul_n abate_v the_o strength_n of_o their_o imbred_a corruption_n and_o all_o this_o in_o and_o through_o the_o lord_n christ_n in_o who_o god_n have_v manifest_v and_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v jehovah_n in_o promissis_fw-la verax_fw-la &_o constans_fw-la so_o say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 20._o speak_v of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n in_o he_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v yea_o and_o amen_o i._n e._n have_v their_o complete_a perfection_n per_fw-la christum_fw-la habent_fw-la suum_fw-la implementum_fw-la grot._n second_o as_o the_o principal_a scope_n or_o end_n of_o this_o reveal_v name_n jehovah_n be_v not_o only_o that_o hereby_o we_o acknowledge_v god_n to_o be_v the_o lord_n who_o create_v all_o thing_n out_o of_o nothing_o and_o give_v they_o a_o be_v but_o also_o to_o teach_v or_o mind_v we_o of_o this_o truth_n that_o all_o his_o promise_n both_o of_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n and_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v shall_v by_o he_o be_v certain_o complete_v because_o that_o he_o who_o have_v promise_v be_v most_o faithful_a beside_o powerful_a and_o true_a in_o his_o performance_n from_o hence_o our_o christian_a duty_n be_v to_o exercise_v our_o faith_n by_o a_o humble_a and_o patient_a reliance_n on_o his_o promise_n expect_v a_o joyful_a issue_n of_o they_o and_o a_o undoubted_a performance_n while_o we_o argue_v thus_o with_o ourselves_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n the_o great_a jehovah_n be_v omnipotent_a or_o almighty_a he_o can_v do_v what_o he_o will_v do_v and_o he_o will_v do_v what_o he_o have_v promise_v it_o be_v he_o who_o have_v choose_v we_o before_o all_o world_n to_o salvation_n by_o christ_n jesus_n it_o be_v he_o who_o have_v in_o great_a mercy_n promise_v to_o all_o believer_n the_o remission_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n and_o with_o it_o regeneration_n of_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n protection_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o danger_n help_v in_o adversity_n sustenance_n in_o this_o life_n by_o a_o constant_a and_o fresh_a supply_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n for_o our_o support_n and_o comfort_n perseverance_n in_o faith_n and_o well-doing_n and_o last_o a_o full_a possession_n of_o eternal_a life_n even_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n in_o heaven_n which_o be_v our_o essential_a happiness_n he_o have_v seal_v up_o those_o blessing_n by_o a_o gracious_a promise_n to_o we_o he_o who_o once_o promise_v to_o abraham_n above_o 400_o year_n before_o to_o redeem_v his_o people_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o promise_a land_n of_o canaan_n a_o type_n of_o heaven_n and_o at_o last_o when_o all_o thing_n be_v desperate_a when_o their_o bondage_n be_v great_a and_o grievous_a when_o they_o groan_v under_o their_o heavy_a burden_n and_o be_v mighty_o oppress_v with_o their_o taskmaster_n than_o he_o awake_v out_o of_o the_o sleep_n of_o his_o connivance_n and_o make_v good_a his_o ancient_a promise_n by_o destroy_v their_o enemy_n and_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o bondage_n whereby_o he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v indeed_o jehovah_n a_o god_n keep_v his_o promise_n how_o then_o can_v we_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o will_v do_v the_o same_o or_o more_o for_o we_o by_o perform_v what_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o that_o with_o a_o solemn_a oath_n to_o we_o i_o e._n to_o save_v our_o soul_n by_o translate_n they_o by_o christ_n to_o heaven_n when_o they_o be_v release_v by_o death_n out_o of_o the_o prison_n of_o our_o body_n he_o can_v do_v this_o for_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o he_o will_v do_v it_o for_o he_o be_v our_o faithful_a creator_n our_o lord_n jehovah_n therefore_o though_o our_o flesh_n rebel_v within_o we_o with_o fear_n and_o doubt_n though_o the_o world_n without_o we_o assault_v we_o with_o afflict_a trouble_n though_o the_o devil_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o naz._n call_v he_o that_o unwearied_a implacable_a restless_a enemy_n begird_v and_o infest_v we_o with_o divers_a temptation_n though_o our_o sin_n speak_v discomfort_v and_o beget_v horror_n in_o we_o nay_o though_o a_o angel_n shall_v teach_v or_o preach_v the_o conttary_n to_o we_o yet_o ought_v we_o not_o to_o fear_v by_o distrust_v god_n faithfulness_n and_o truth_n which_o like_o himself_o be_v immutable_a and_o infallible_a and_o change_v not_o upon_o this_o rock_n of_o his_o fidelity_n we_o ought_v to_o build_v our_o faith_n believe_v that_o what_o thing_n soever_o he_o have_v decree_v and_o promise_v whether_o they_o be_v temporal_n or_o spiritual_n the_o good_a thing_n of_o this_o life_n or_o the_o other_o we_o shall_v receive_v they_o at_o his_o merciful_a hand_n if_o we_o perform_v what_o be_v require_v on_o our_o part_n the_o condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n viz._n faith_n and_o obedience_n resign_v up_o our_o soul_n whole_o to_o god_n in_o a_o humble_a submission_n to_o his_o will_n and_o wait_v with_o patience_n for_o that_o word_n he_o have_v promise_v and_o be_v yet_o to_o come_v thus_o david_n wait_v upon_o the_o lord_n psa._n 40._o 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o wait_v patient_o upon_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n this_o wait_n on_o god_n which_o imply_v a_o patient_a expectation_n of_o what_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o we_o hereafter_o in_o his_o word_n together_o with_o a_o humble_a resignation_n of_o our_o will_n to_o his_o it_o require_v a_o great_a measure_n and_o strength_n of_o grace_n such_o as_o be_v in_o abraham_n and_o that_o first_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o thing_n wait_v for_o which_o be_v far_o beyond_o or_o transcend_v any_o thing_n which_o we_o can_v hope_v for_o in_o this_o world_n second_o in_o regard_n of_o that_o long_a day_n or_o that_o long_a period_n of_o time_n which_o god_n have_v take_v and_o prefix_v before_o he_o will_v complete_a his_o promise_n three_o the_o tediousness_n of_o delay_n which_o result_v from_o the_o former_a four_o the_o many_o opposition_n trouble_n cross_n affliction_n and_o disappointment_n which_o in_o our_o way_n in_o this_o life_n we_o meet_v with_o five_o the_o scandal_n or_o offence_n receive_v from_o they_o which_o be_v in_o high_a esteem_n for_o religion_n when_o we_o see_v they_o fall_v into_o enormous_a sin_n we_o be_v apt_a to_o question_v god_n promise_n of_o perseverance_n make_v unto_o we_o where_o he_o say_v i_o will_v never_o leave_v nor_o for_o sake_n you_o add_v to_o all_o these_o a_o six_o and_o that_o be_v the_o untoward_a peevishness_n of_o our_o faint_a nature_n apt_a to_o sink_v under_o the_o least_o discouragement_n in_o these_o respect_n there_o must_v be_v more_o than_o a_o humane_a spirit_n to_o hold_v up_o the_o soul_n and_o carry_v it_o along_o to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o which_o we_o wait_v for_o and_o they_o that_o with_o the_o prophet_n david_n psa._n 62._o 1._o true_o wait_v upon_o god_n from_o who_o they_o expect_v salvation_n they_o be_v thus_o spirit_v thus_o quicken_v with_o divine_a grace_n though_o they_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o place_n of_o dragon_n psal._n 44._o 2._o or_o whale_n overwhelm_v with_o the_o sea_n of_o calamity_n and_o cover_v with_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n though_o with_o jonah_n they_o lie_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o whale_n belly_n in_o a_o place_n of_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o deep_a yet_o their_o faith_n in_o the_o great_a god_n who_o name_n be_v jehovah_n will_v then_o and_o there_o show_v itself_o lightsome_a and_o full_a of_o life_n
will_v not_o throw_v away_o both_o justice_n &_o modesty_n can_v pretend_v it_o to_o be_v a_o work_n of_o religion_n and_o righteousness_n unless_o there_o be_v a_o religion_n and_o righteousness_n without_o or_o to_o speak_v more_o plain_o and_o more_o true_o both_o together_o against_o the_o text._n and_o as_o it_o be_v before_o christ_n time_n so_o ever_o since_o till_o of_o late_a year_n there_o be_v the_o same_o supreme_a in_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n where_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v christian_n according_a to_o that_o golden_a rule_n of_o theodosius_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o first_o ephesine_n council_n sacrâ_fw-la ad_fw-la cyrillum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o must_v know_v that_o the_o church_n and_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v so_o knit_v together_o that_o both_o do_v make_v but_o one_o body_n and_o therefore_o can_v admit_v but_o one_o head_n and_o when_o the_o donatist_n in_o s._n augustine_n time_n think_v much_o that_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n shall_v interpose_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n the_o good_a father_n epist._n 50._o allege_v the_o text_n against_o they_o psal._n 2._o 10_o 11._o be_v wise_a now_o therefore_o o_o you_o king_n serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n and_o give_v this_o gloss_n upon_o it_o aliter_fw-la rex_fw-la domino_fw-la seruit_fw-la quia_fw-la homo_fw-la est_fw-la aliter_fw-la quia_fw-la etiam_fw-la &_o rex_fw-la est_fw-la quïa_n homo_fw-la est_fw-la ei_fw-la seruit_fw-la vivendo_fw-la sideliter_fw-la quia_fw-la verò_fw-la etiam_fw-la rex_fw-la est_fw-la seruit_fw-la leges_fw-la justa_fw-la praecipientes_fw-la &_o contraria_fw-la prohiben'e_v convenienti_fw-la vigore_fw-la sanciendo_fw-la sic_fw-la servivit_fw-la hezekias_fw-la lucos_fw-la &_o templa_fw-la idolorum_fw-la &_o excelsa_fw-la destruendo_fw-la etc._n etc._n a_o king_n serve_v god_n otherwise_o as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n and_o otherwise_o as_o he_o be_v a_o king_n as_o a_o man_n he_o serve_v he_o by_o live_v faithful_o but_o as_o a_o king_n he_o serve_v he_o by_o make_v and_o execute_v pious_a law_n to_o propagate_v and_o defend_v his_o service_n so_o do_v hezekias_n so_o do_v josias_n serve_v he_o nay_o so_o do_v the_o king_n of_o nineveh_n serve_v he_o in_o command_v a_o fast_o upon_o jonahs_n preach_v so_o do_v darius_n serve_v he_o in_o allow_v daniel_n to_o break_v the_o image_n and_o cast_v his_o enemy_n into_o the_o lion_n den_n so_o do_v nabuchodonosor_n serve_v he_o forbid_v his_o subject_n to_o blaspheme_v his_o name_n in_o hoc_fw-la ergo_fw-la serviunt_fw-la reges_fw-la domino_fw-la in_o quantum_fw-la sunt_fw-la reges_fw-la quum_fw-la ea_fw-la faciunt_fw-la ad_fw-la serviendum_fw-la illi_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la facere_fw-la nisi_fw-la reges_fw-la then_o do_v king_n serve_v god_n as_o king_n when_o they_o do_v those_o thing_n for_o his_o service_n which_o none_o can_v lawful_o do_v but_o king_n this_o say_v he_o can_v not_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n do_v stand_v up_o and_o the_o ruler_n take_v counsel_n together_o against_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o christ_n but_o now_o that_o text_n be_v fulfil_v all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v worship_v he_o quis_fw-la ment_fw-la sobrius_fw-la regibus_fw-la dicit_fw-la nolite_fw-la curare_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la vestro_fw-la etc._n etc._n who_o but_o a_o mad_a man_n will_v say_v to_o king_n do_v not_o you_o look_v after_o the_o church_n what_o be_v it_o to_o you_o whether_o the_o people_n be_v religious_a or_o sacrilegious_a and_o again_o epist._n 48._o he_o answer_v the_o same_o objection_n concern_v the_o apostle_n time_n and_o since_o their_o time_n till_o some_o late_a century_n of_o year_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o christian_a king_n and_o emperor_n do_v call_v all_o the_o general_a council_n confirm_v their_o canon_n and_o order_v the_o chief_a matter_n of_o religion_n eusebius_n go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o say_v that_o holiday_n be_v appoint_v by_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n euseb._n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la const._n lib._n 4._o and_o that_o himself_o do_v once_o say_v to_o the_o bishop_n when_o he_o have_v invite_v they_o to_o a_o feast_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o be_v appoint_v bishop_n or_o overseer_n of_o god_n service_n within_o the_o church_n but_o without_o the_o church_n god_n have_v appoint_v i_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n you_o must_v perform_v the_o divine_a service_n but_o i_o must_v see_v it_o perform_v the_o like_a be_v evident_a concern_v all_o the_o ancient_a council_n the_o first_o general_a council_n be_v call_v by_o constantine_n and_o he_o give_v this_o reason_n for_o it_o because_o it_o much_o concern_v he_o to_o see_v that_o truth_n and_o peace_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v preserve_v in_o the_o church_n the_o second_o be_v call_v by_o theodosius_n the_o first_o and_o the_o father_n of_o that_o council_n in_o their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o emperor_n do_v first_o make_v this_o profession_n that_o they_o be_v gather_v together_o by_o his_o writ_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o then_o make_v this_o petition_n that_o their_o decree_n may_v be_v confirm_v by_o his_o authority_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o three_o by_o theodosius_n the_o second_o and_o valentinian_n the_o monk_n petition_v they_o not_o to_o neglect_v the_o church_n of_o god_n adulterate_v by_o heretic_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o to_o call_v a_o council_n to_o suppress_v they_o and_o the_o council_n itself_o profess_v they_o be_v gather_v together_o by_o the_o emperor_n edict_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d call_v they_o for_o their_o pain_n most_o relgious_a emperor_n lover_n of_o christ_n and_o belove_v of_o god_n democratical_a frenzy_n have_v not_o yet_o so_o poison_a religion_n as_o to_o teach_v churchman_n to_o speak_v irreverent_o of_o king_n much_o less_o to_o act_v disobedient_o against_o they_o and_o pope_n celestine_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o theodosius_n tell_v he_o plain_o major_a vobis_fw-la fidei_fw-la causa_fw-la debet_fw-la esse_fw-la quam_fw-la regni_fw-la ampliúsque_fw-la pro_fw-la pace_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la clementia_fw-la vestra_fw-la debet_fw-la esse_fw-la sollicita_fw-la quam_fw-la pro_fw-la omnium_fw-la securitate_fw-la terrarum_fw-la you_o ought_v it_o be_v not_o courtesy_n but_o duty_n you_o ought_v say_v he_o to_o set_v a_o high_a estimation_n upon_o your_o faith_n then_o upon_o your_o crown_n and_o to_o be_v more_o solicitous_a for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n then_o for_o the_o peace_n of_o your_o kingdom_n and_o he_o give_v a_o irresistible_a reason_n for_o this_o undeniable_a truth_n pro_fw-la vestri_fw-la enim_fw-la imperii_fw-la salute_v geritur_fw-la quicquid_fw-la pro_fw-la quiet_a ecclesiae_fw-la vel_fw-la sanctae_fw-la religionis_fw-la reverentiâ_fw-la laboratur_fw-la for_o the_o same_o consultation_n which_o establish_v peace_n and_o purity_n in_o the_o church_n do_v establish_v peace_n and_o safety_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n the_o four_o general_a council_n be_v call_v by_o the_o emperor_n martian_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o second_o action_n and_o in_o the_o six_o action_n they_o call_v he_o plain_o a_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n a_o new_a constantine_n a_o new_a david_n nay_o a_o new_a paul_n too_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o think_v a_o religious_a king_n in_o some_o sort_n equal_a to_o a_o apostle_n though_o not_o for_o preach_v the_o gospel_n yet_o for_o propagate_a it_o much_o like_a unto_o that_o gloss_n of_o aben-ezra_n upon_o lam._n 2._o 6._o the_o priest_n be_v to_o teach_v the_o law_n and_o the_o king_n be_v to_o defend_v the_o law_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o law_n be_v commit_v to_o they_o both_o the_o five_o general_a council_n be_v call_v by_o justinian_n and_o the_o bishop_n with_o one_o acclamation_n say_v unto_o he_o zizania_fw-la tu_fw-la ejecisti_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la tu_fw-la emendâsti_fw-la in_o collat_n 4._o ad_fw-la sinem_fw-la it_o be_v you_o have_v throw_v out_o the_o tare_n it_o be_v you_o have_v reform_v the_o church_n and_o himself_o in_o his_o form_n send_v to_o the_o council_n to_o be_v read_v before_o they_o open_v the_o synod_n say_v he_o call_v this_o council_n as_o his_o predecessor_n have_v the_o other_o before_o he_o constantine_n that_o of_o nice_n theodosius_n the_o first_o that_o of_o constantinople_n theodosius_n the_o second_o that_o of_o ephesus_n and_o martian_a that_o of_o chalcedon_n and_o say_v that_o constantine_n theodosius_n and_o martian_a do_v very_o much_o assist_v the_o bishop_n in_o their_o several_a council_n for_o the_o recover_v either_o of_o the_o verity_n or_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o six_o general_a council_n be_v call_v by_o constantinus_n pogonatus_n his_o own_o edict_n direct_v to_o pope_n domnus_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o decease_n deliver_v to_o agatho_n profess_v as_o much_o wherein_o he_o require_v he_o to_o send_v some_o of_o his_o church_n not_o only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
and_o give_v this_o reason_n why_o he_o require_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o be_v ordain_v and_o appoint_v of_o god_n to_o preserve_v the_o faith_n holy_a and_o incorrupt_a as_o we_o receive_v it_o the_o pope_n will_v now_o tell_v the_o emperor_n so_o sed_fw-la non_fw-la fuit_fw-la sic_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o thus_o no_o nor_o in_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n after_o and_o in_o the_o sixteen_o action_n of_o this_o council_n the_o acclamation_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o emperor_n at_o first_o call_v he_o another_o constantine_n another_o martian_a another_o theodosius_n another_o justinian_n be_v a_o proof_n beyond_o exception_n for_o no_o history_n be_v so_o irrefragable_a as_o the_o act_n of_o a_o council_n that_o those_o emperor_n have_v call_v the_o forementioned_a council_n and_o the_o petition_n at_o last_o of_o the_o same_o bishop_n pray_v for_o he_o as_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o orthodox_n religion_n as_o the_o bulwark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n can_v but_o assure_v we_o that_o they_o think_v it_o the_o emperor_n duty_n to_o call_v those_o council_n because_o they_o think_v they_o bind_v to_o defend_v the_o faith_n and_o to_o protect_v the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o see_v the_o title_n of_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n to_o a_o king_n be_v of_o much_o great_a antiquity_n than_o our_o henry_n the_o eight_o as_o well_o as_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o and_o so_o many_o several_a law_n in_o the_o code_n and_o in_o the_o novel_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o church_n of_o bishop_n of_o synod_n of_o heretic_n will_v be_v a_o evidence_n to_o the_o world_n end_n of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o king_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a no_o less_o than_o those_o other_o title_n in_o the_o institute_n and_o digest_v that_o concern_v liberty_n and_o property_n and_o the_o affair_n of_o this_o world_n will_v be_v a_o invincible_a evidence_n of_o their_o supremacy_n in_o civil_a cause_n but_o i_o may_v not_o insist_v long_o upon_o this_o argument_n such_o kind_n of_o quotation_n be_v fit_a for_o the_o school_n then_o for_o the_o pulpit_n i_o will_v only_o add_v this_o one_o more_o from_o pope_n adrian_n own_o mouth_n to_z charles_n the_o great_a of_o france_n who_o he_o call_v spiritualem_fw-la compatrem_fw-la that_o be_v either_o his_o spiritual_a godfather_n for_o his_o patronage_n and_o care_n over_o his_o person_n or_o his_o fellow-father_n in_o spiritual_n for_o his_o jurisdiction_n and_o government_n over_o the_o church_n and_o he_o labour_v to_o give_v he_o such_o punctual_a satisfaction_n in_o all_o particular_n concern_v the_o second_o nicene_n council_n as_o if_o he_o fear_v that_o of_o frankford_n call_v by_o charles_n will_v as_o indeed_o it_o do_v over_o balance_n that_o of_o nice_n procure_v by_o himself_o no_o less_o in_o truth_n than_o it_o do_v in_o authority_n but_o we_o think_v his_o compater_fw-la to_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n a_o little_a too_o high_a though_o his_o successor_n will_v not_o stoop_v so_o low_o for_o as_o we_o allow_v the_o supreme_a no_o superior_a so_o we_o must_v allow_v he_o no_o equal_a which_o be_v my_o second_o conclusion_n no_o person_n but_o be_v inferior_a to_o he_o in_o power_n as_o no_o power_n but_o be_v inferior_a to_o he_o in_o cause_n whether_o ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a so_o no_o person_n or_o person_n whether_o ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a but_o be_v and_o be_v inferior_a to_o he_o in_o power_n we_o understand_v not_o that_o singulis_n major_a &_o universis_fw-la minor_fw-la or_o if_o we_o understand_v it_o think_v that_o omnis_fw-la anima_fw-la speak_v as_o well_o universis_fw-la as_o singulis_n and_o therefore_o not_o only_o one_o and_o one_o by_o himself_o but_o also_o one_o and_o all_o subject_n together_o all_o be_v inferior_a to_o their_o sovereign_n because_o they_o be_v all_o bind_v to_o submit_v unto_o he_o let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n rom._n 13._o 1._o their_o convening_n together_o do_v as_o much_o take_v off_o their_o soul_n as_o it_o do_v their_o subjection_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can_v never_o agree_v but_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v join_v with_o the_o universis_fw-la in_o the_o text_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d therefore_o of_o they_o also_o no_o less_o then_o of_o single_a person_n must_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o next_o verse_n be_v necessary_o understand_v whosoever_o resist_v or_o how_o many_o soever_o resist_v both_o alike_o be_v comprehend_v in_o they_o that_o resist_v and_o they_o shall_v receive_v to_o themselves_o damnation_n the_o word_n here_o use_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d subordinetur_fw-la let_v every_o soul_n be_v subordinate_a a_o word_n that_o more_o particular_o point_v at_o the_o ordines_fw-la regni_fw-la in_o the_o very_a signification_n of_o it_o because_o they_o can_v never_o want_v power_n to_o make_v resistance_n and_o seldom_o want_v chaplain_n that_o encourage_v they_o to_o make_v it_o but_o ordines_fw-la sunt_fw-la ordinandi_fw-la and_o subordinandi_fw-la or_o else_o ordines_fw-la will_v be_v confusiones_fw-la order_n must_v be_v order_v and_o subordinate_a or_o though_o call_v state_n yet_o will_v be_v ruin_n though_o call_v order_n will_v turn_v confusion_n both_o of_o the_o text_n and_o of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o certain_o the_o reason_n allege_v by_o s._n paul_n as_o equal_o concern_v ordines_fw-la regni_fw-la as_o other_o subject_n and_o those_o as_o well_o all_o as_o some_o universos_fw-la as_o well_o as_o singulos_fw-la first_o god_n ordinance_n which_o may_v no_o more_o be_v reject_v by_o all_o then_o by_o some_o by_o all_o together_o then_o by_o single_a person_n in_o particular_a second_o damnation_n which_o may_v be_v incur_v by_o all_o as_o well_o as_o by_o some_o by_o a_o parliament_n as_o well_o as_o by_o private_a gentleman_n it_o be_v true_a the_o king_n may_v not_o be_v so_o great_a a_o terror_n to_o all_o as_o to_o some_o because_o all_o join_n together_o may_v not_o be_v afraid_a of_o his_o power_n what_o then_o yet_o i_o hope_v all_o have_v conscience_n as_o well_o as_o some_o and_o though_o happy_o it_o may_v not_o be_v say_v of_o the_o all_o of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n you_o must_v needs_o be_v subject_a for_o wrath_n because_o all_o subject_n hold_v together_o need_v not_o fear_v their_o king_n wrath_n yet_o it_o may_v and_o must_v be_v say_v of_o they_o all_o you_o must_v needs_o be_v subject_a for_o conscience_n sake_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o first_o verse_n for_o be_v they_o never_o so_o many_o that_o combine_v together_o that_o will_v give_v no_o satisfaction_n to_o the_o conscience_n in_o regard_n of_o itself_o nor_o release_v in_o regard_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o even_o this_o very_a objection_n be_v sufficient_o answer_v in_o the_o verse_n before_o in_o that_o he_o be_v say_v to_o bear_v the_o sword_n as_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o bear_v the_o sword_n in_o vain_a for_o though_o happy_o or_o rather_o unhappy_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o person_n he_o may_v bear_v the_o sword_n in_o vain_a and_o perish_v under_o it_o yet_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o office_n he_o can_v for_o so_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o a_o revenger_n of_o wrath_n that_o can_v fail_v of_o his_o revenge_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v epiph._n haer._n 40._o adversus_fw-la archontichos_n he_o have_v from_o god_n the_o right_n of_o the_o sword_n not_o from_o any_o other_o and_o he_o have_v it_o for_o revenge_n will_v to_o god_n those_o man_n who_o follow_v these_o heretic_n in_o multiply_a power_n and_o principality_n though_o not_o in_o heaven_n yet_o in_o earth_n and_o in_o some_o other_o thing_n too_o for_o these_o archontici_n do_v abhor_v baptism_n and_o slight_v the_o communion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d epiph._n ibid._n i_o say_v will_v those_o man_n who_o follow_v these_o heretic_n in_o this_o gross_a opinion_n will_v likewise_o serious_o go_v along_o with_o this_o learned_a father_n in_o his_o solid_a confutation_n there_o will_v never_o again_o be_v any_o cavil_v dispute_n upon_o the_o 13_o to_o the_o roman_n his_o confutation_n in_o brief_a be_v this_o you_o archontici_n think_v by_o multiply_a power_n in_o heaven_n to_o overthrow_v the_o dominion_n and_o power_n of_o one_o god_n but_o indeed_o you_o rather_o establish_v it_o for_o if_o in_o earth_n there_o may_v be_v so_o many_o principality_n and_o power_n in_o one_o kingdom_n all_o subject_n not_o repugnant_a to_o one_o king_n then_o much_o more_o so_o in_o heaven_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o every_o kingdom_n upon_o earth_n there_o be_v many_o principality_n but_o they_o be_v all_o under_o one_o king_n nothing_o